BURRILL
COLEMAN,
COLORED
A
By
Jeannette Downes Coltharp
FRANKLIN,
OHIO
The Editor Publishing Company
Copyright 1896
Jeannette Downes Coltharp
Madison Coordinator’s note: Born in 1862, Jeannette Downes was the daughter of a prominent Madison Parish lawyer and Parish Judge who was murdered in 1870 when she was only eight years old. It is very probable that this murder had a great influence on her book. Jeannette Downes later married W. F. Coltharp and lived in Tallulah until she died in 1947.
The book, Burrill Coleman, Colored, has been out-of-print for many years and was recently copied from microfilm in the Cornell University Library by Dr. Cynthia Savaglio, a professor of Radio and TV at Ithaca College in Ithaca, NY. Many thanks are due Cynthia for allowing me to copy her copy of the 315 page book.
Scanning the copies made from microfilm to a computer-sensible format was particularly troublesome because of the many scratches on the film and specks on the glass. Although every effort was made to honor the original transcript, it is inevitable that some mistakes have probably been made. Strangely for a publication of this type, typographical errors, misspellings and repeated words were abundant. Some of the more-obvious ones were corrected, but many were not.
Burrill Coleman, Colored, was written entirely about, and in fact is an outstanding history of, customs and events concerning the coexistence of the people — both black and white — in Madison Parish during the late 19th century. Among other things it involves such things as robbery, murder, romance, intrigue, balls & tournaments, gambling, insurrection and, unfortunately, lynching. Many (maybe all) of these events actually occurred, but the names of people and places have been changed such that Tallulah becomes “Asola”, and Milliken’s Bend becomes “Sigma.” The lynching, for instance, occurred in 1894 — just two years before the book was published — and was widely publicized.
Anyone who has trouble with the so-called “N” word should read no further. During the period represented by this book it was commonly used without disparagement by both races and is used many times in this story — very seldom in a derogatory manner. Richard P. Sevier, August 2004.
CHAPTER
I — Guarding the Steamboat Landing
CHAPTER
II — Appearance of Burrill Coleman
CHAPTER III — Robbery at the
Steamboat Landing
CHAPTER
IV — Perry is Accused of the Robbery
CHAPTER
V — Appearance of Mr. Durieux
CHAPTER
VI — Appearance of Dr. Allison
CHAPTER VII — Dr. Allison’s
Background
CHAPTER VIII — The Dude Salesman
CHAPTER
IX — The Gun Club
CHAPTER X
— The Jousting Tournament
CHAPTER
XI — The Ball
CHAPTER XII — Ride Home from the Ball
with Durieux
CHAPTER XIII — Appearance of the
Syrian, Omene
Kirrch; — Burrill Coleman and Ella
CHAPTER XIV — Cotton Picking Time —
Dice game — The Cutting of Allen Whitney’s Throat
CHAPTER
XV —
Robbery and Kidnapping of Mr. Chaflin
CHAPTER XVI — The Arrest of Burrill
Coleman and Trial for Murder in Mississippi
CHAPTER XVII — Christmas on the
Plantation — Mr. Barrett’s Dislike of Dr. Allison
CHAPTER XVIII — Discussion of Dr.
Allison and his “Roommates”
CHAPTER XIX — Aunt Parthenia’s
[Daughter’s] Wedding
CHAPTER XX — Nellie’s Secret Meeting with Dr. Allison
CHAPTER XXI — Murder of Carroll and Minor
CHAPTER XXII — Dr. Allison Arrested
for Murder
CHAPTER XXIII — The Death of Ella
CHAPTER XXIV — Nellie Sent to New
Orleans
CHAPTER XXV — Nellie tells Durieux of
her love for Dr. Allison
CHAPTER XXVI — Murder of Alvah
Northcot
CHAPTER XXVII — The Lynch Mob
CHAPTER XXVIII — The Second
Lynching
CHAPTER XXIX — Durieux tells Barrett
of Nellie’s Secret Meeting with Dr. Allison
CHAPTER XXX
— Nellie and Dr.
Allison are Engaged
CHAPTER XXXI
— Finale
It is a queer sight to see one of the Anchor
Line's immense steamboats landed at a little platform entirely surrounded by
water, and unloading freight as seriously as if the stage-plank rested upon
solid rock.
There is
something ludicrous in the comparison of the stately vessel with its gleaming
white frame towering high above, and the frail rough plank and rougher
trestle-work of the place whereon the freight must be deposited. The line of
levee a few hundred yards further inward looks more fitted to the purpose;
even though it rises only a few inches above the water's bosom, but great
steamboats, heavily laden, cannot wade through five feet of water, and if they
could there would be vehement opposition raised by the inhabitants on the other
side of the embankment, whose houses scarcely peep above the levee's crest.
On
the opposite side of the platform from the pulsing steamer with its hurrying
deck-hands and commanding mate, a skiff, a bateau and a flat are tied, giving
the little wooden island an air of business importance both cheery and
interesting. A small warehouse built of rough lumber stands to the north, its
interior given up to the tawny waters that fill it almost to the tops of its
doors, and lap with soothing monotony against its outer walls as the motion of
the boat tosses the waves restlessly about. A long thicket of young willows and
cottonwoods stretch to the right and to the left, marking by
its abrupt discontinuance the point where the bank and river meet. Way over on the
Mississippi shore, showing like
a murky
finger-mark on the horizon, the
trees part
the blue-grey of
the heavens and the grey-blue of the reflecting water, dispelling the
illusion that all is one
illimitable element.
Across the
levee from the landing, the southern land, with its level far-reaching acres,
lies frank and open as a maiden's brow. Has our country no secrets to conceal, no thoughts to hide from the world's
gaze, that it spreads like a smoothed-out scroll, open to the reading
of any, whose gaze may rest upon it, indifferent to his scrutiny?
Not a hill nor a cliff, neither mountain nor ravine confronts the stranger, to
hint of heart throbs and chastisements that left deep furrows to proclaim a
past or suggest tales of experience that might enchain a listener long
and unwearingly. Declaring candor by her youthful mein, who could accuse her of
harkening to the subtle river's wooing, and meeting his advances with eager
arms? Does she feel revengeful toward that arch plotter, man, and greet her
lover all the more fondly for the barrier his love of gold has raised to keep
her from her lord, who long ago had undisputed right to her caresses at his
majestic will? Who
could guess what a passionate, courageous nature underlies so much seeming
tranquility, as she basks in the most golden of sunlight beneath the bluest of
all skies? Is she really nothing more than the child she looks, with her smooth
rosy cheek, that she sings and laughs so innocently today, and weeps so
pathetically tomorrow? Dealing absolute justice now, and raging vindictively
anon, while through it all, we, her dolls, love her as yearningly, as fervently
as her generosity and tenderness merit. Ambition or restlessness may lead us,
her children, far away from her dark soil and vivid vegetation, but one by one
we drift back again, homesick and weary, to the welcome that is ever here —
more loyal, more trustful, than ever before. We fold our tents and boastfully
go, but as surely as nature's grandest artery glides forever by to meet the
waters of the gulf, we come again humbled by
our folly, acknowledging that potent charm which is a tradition with us,
yet one which no one has yet been able to analyze. By and by, perhaps, we may
cease to defy the bond that holds us, and with folded wings avow what we can
but know, that this is our Eden, and we, the gardeners, are here to train its
immeasurable possibilities and obliterate its limitations.
The sun hung
like a great illuminated orange just above the belt of wood in the western
distance, put there ostensibly for the purpose of concealing where the sky and
land meet. Its last rim, glowing softer and redder all the
while, drops behind the dusky trees just as
the last package is deposited upon the platform.
The boat-bell
gives a series of deep-toned sounds, followed by the musical tinkling of the smaller signals,
and then with a great "chouff" from her vitals, the majestic creature
lifts her stage-plank tenderly. With a grace
and dignity exceeded by no living
thing, she glides
backward and swinging around, seemingly reluctant to say farewell, is soon in the
current Speeding upon her way.
"Ben."
"Yes
sir."
"It is
too late to boat this freight over to the shore tonight, yet I
dislike exceedingly to leave it here until Monday."
"It sho'
is too late to tote
it over tonight, Boss. But what kin we do? It's mighty bad for them boats to fetch freight here this time of a Sat'day.”
Ben imitated Mr. Barrett's attitude and air of concern, and they stood there side by
side, the black man and the white each with his hands thrust to the
utmost depths of his trousers’ pockets,
and each staring at the pile of freight as though the solution of
the problem might be revealed by some hitherto undiscovered arrangement of the various boxes and barrels.
"
Well," said Mr. Barrett in a voice that plainly showed his disappointment
and perplexity, "It is growing late and I must return to the store. Give
me the freight bills and I will go." He walked to the edge of the
platform, and turning spoke to the landing-keeper again: “Ben, you must watch
this freight, and not let anything happen to it."
"All
right, sir. You reckon I ought to kiver it with the tarp'lins?"
"No, I
hardly think that necessary; there is no probability of its raining." Mr.
Barrett seated himself in the skiff, and Ben Simpson, stepping in after, took
up the oars and rowed swiftly across the submerged field between the landing
and the levee. By and by where the waters now lie tranquil and glassy,
luxuriant cotton will wave in the summer
breeze, its roots nurtured by the new
deposit left as toll for the river's trespassing. When the skiff landed
at the levee both men got out; Mr. Barrett
to mount his horse and ride to his place of business in the village, and the negro to go to his cabin standing a few yards from the road. Ben tied the
skiff to a stake driven in the top of the levee and picked up the oars
to carry them with him for safe keeping. As he
threw these under his front gallery, two dogs rushed out of the house to greet him,
upsetting as they came a little two-year old boy, Ben's baby, who was standing
in the doorway eating his supper. As the little fellow toppled over, his chubby
feet pointing for a moment at the rafters, he clung to his tin plate with only a slight loss of
molasses; but his piece of corn bread fell from his hand and it was not long
before its absence was perceived.
" What's
Buddy crying about? You, Jakey, you tend to your buddy! You know I got to
finish i'nin' your pa's shirt!!"
Jakey, not
many sizes larger than Buddy, harkened to his mother's voice and giving his
suspenders a habitual readjustment by slipping first one thumb then the other beneath the osnaburg straps and lifting
each successively with a swing of his whole body, came forward and assisted his little brother to his feet,
inquiring what was the matter.
Buddy extended
his sticky empty hand and complained, his big black eyes rolling, “B'e'd,
b'e'd!”
Jakey looked
about, and finally found the missing substantial under the cupboard near the
doorway. He brushed off the loose dirt and restored it to its owner, who contentedly
resumed dipping it into his molasses and munching off the sweetened surface.
Jakey went back to the corner of the
fire-place and again occupied himself with a piece of soft drift wood
which he was, with the aid of an old butcher knife, constructing into an
"Anchor Line."
Ben had in
the meanwhile come into the house and seated
himself not far from the ironing board and begun playing with the dogs
who followed him in, fawning upon him.
"Ben,
how us goin' to church tonight, — can't go, kin you ?" Elvira questioned,
pausing in her ironing to test the heat of her implement.
"Oh, I
don't know; why?"
"Nothin',
I was just studyin' about the freight. Didn't the 'City of the South' put off
a big lot? She staid a mighty long time."
" Yes,
but that don't matter, I reckon. Perry Johnson's
levee guard you know, and while he's got to keep
awake anyhow,
he can watch the landin' too, just as well. I'll ask him to do it."
"Well.” Elvira made her iron hiss
again and went on with her work. "I wanted to know, not so
much my 'count as Ella's. Ella Green come along here just 'while ago and,
askt ef us was goin' to church, 'cause she said she
wanted to go 'long with us ef we was. She said she didn't keer 'bout goin'
thought you was going to 'zort, 'cause she said she pintedly wanted to hear
you. She said she'd come along 'bout time for us to start, and she 'lowed she
hoped you wouldn't disappoint her."
Ben felt considerably pleased with the compliment paid
to his powers as an exhorter, and sat for a while in meditation; then he roused
himself and exclaimed:
" Look here, Elviry, put your ir'nin' down; I wants
my supper, 'pecially ef I got to go see Perry 'fore we starts to church. Ef we
goin' we got to git there early on recount of its bein' my night to
'zort."
" Well, I reckon you wont go till I gets your shirt
ir'ned, will you?" Elvira responded playfully. `Ef you wants your supper,
help yourself; the meat's in the skillet on that side of the hearth, and the
bread's in the oven over there. I spect you knows where the molasses is."
"Papa, there's some potatoes in de ashes,"
Jakey commented, indifferently.
"La, there sho is! I had plumb forgot." Elvira
began poking in the ashes, and sure
enough there they were, wrinkled and sticky, with the syrup: that had simmered through cracks in the skins candied on the outside. Jakey had not forgotten the sweet potatoes if his mother had. He had been waiting for the time when she would announce that they were done; so he laid his knife and steamboat aside and moved
nearer. Buddy came forward too, and eagerly watched Jakey trying to cool that hottest of hot things, an ash baked sweet potato. He no doubt thought the cooling process unnecessarily long, but it is not the little
darkey’s habit to fret, and true to his class, he contented himself with petting the cat, and was at last
rewarded for his patience with a
nice potato soaking in spare-rib gravy.
" Honey who you reckon I seen on the `City of the
South’?” Ben asked suddenly, looking up at his wife.
"La, Ben, how you spec I know. Who was it?"
Ben laid the bone he was picking in the plate upon his
knee, and after deliberately wiping his mouth on the back of his hand,
answered: " T'was Jeff Chesterfield."
" Well I never! When did he get out the penitenchy?"
“He say he been out six months. Say he been up the
river. He asked lots of questions about how us all was gitten’ ‘long, and told
me to tell everybody `howdy' for him."
" How long he goin' to stay? "
" He never got off; he's a regular rouster now. Say
he likes runnin' on the river mighty well."
" Well, sir! I must tell Mattie about Jeff so she
can go to the boat to see him next time she passes. All them girls will want to
see him 'cause Jeff, he used to have every last one of 'em stuck on him."
" They was that," laughed Ben, " and
seems like to me there was somebody named `Elviry’ ‘mongst the lot too." 'Ben winked and smiled broadly at Elvira, who giggled, somewhat confused.
"Oh, well," she said, "that was before you found out how to go down into your pockets at picnics and such like” She laughed and added: " What I got to leave wid you, too, is that the `stuck'
wasn't all on one side, neither."
“Un-hoo, oh yes, I
understan'," mumbled Ben mockingly, shaking his head. He put his empty
plate on the table, gave a long yawn of satisfaction, and picked up his old
hat. " Well, give us a kiss, and I’m off to see Perry." He put his arm around his wife’s plump shoulders and
gave her a rousing smack, then stopped in the door-way to ask, "You goin'
to leave the chillun with Aunt Nancy, ain't you?”
"Yes, I
reckon so. Aunt
Nancy's always willin' to look after 'em for
me, and she's the nearest one to leave 'em with."
" All
right then, you be sure to be ready ginst I git back."
Ben walked briskly out to the road that followed the base of the levee, and turning into
it, he went only a short distance before he was accosted.
" Hello,
Elder, is that you? "
"That's who it is," Simpson returned cheerily, "and you are the very man I'm hunting for.
How's your health?" Without waiting for Perry to reply, Ben launched into
the business that brought him to seek the interview.
" That's
all right, I'll do it for you — certainly, certainly," Perry assented
readily. " You're right late gittin' started though, ain't you? "
" No, I
reckon not. It don't take me long to go five miles after I put my foot into the
road. You see, Perry, the particularest reason I'm so anxious to go is, that
'sides its bein' my night to 'zort, I ain't never missed a single night bein’
there in the whole three weeks the meetin' been goin' on, and it would look
kind a odd for me top miss the very night I'm spected, don't you know."
"Exactly,
of course, I understand."
"Well,
so long! I'm a thousand times obliged to you, Perry, and I'll do you a good
turn first chance I git."
"Oh,
that's all right," again declared good-natured Perry, and as Ben turned
and retraced his steps homeward, Perry ascended the path that slanted
diagonally up the tall embankment, preparatory to beginning his silent vigil of
the night.
When he
reached the top of the levee, Perry turned his
face toward the stream, and lifted his chest to inhale a deep delicious
breath of the soft dreamy air. The moon was
already up, and hung above the trees on the other side of the water,
round and full; making the land, trees and river gleam white and radiant where
there were no shadows, or deeply black where objects obstructed her rays. A mocking bird, anticipating summer by the
day's promise of spring, swayed upon a branch
of a pecan tree and sang a glorious nocturne to the little maiden
listening in the willows.
The pecan
tree that harbored the noble lover stood some distance out from the levee, with
the waters lapping its bark high up, and
branding a collar about the
trunk that would be a living record of their height after summer months sent the
river, humbled, down within its banks. In its infancy this tree shaded a ditch bank
and turn row, far back in the fields. It sprang from a pecan that dropped from
a little boy's pocket, and had thrived in the untrodden spot. It began its
career fully three-quarters of a mile from the river's bank, and had stood its ground sturdily through storm and
sunshine. It had seen the ruthless waters encroaching nearer and nearer each
year, until now, when it reared its handsome head in seeming consciousness of
its strength and completed height, it stood but
a stone's throw from the creeping
tyrant that asked but a few years more to
claim it as this prey. Then the powerful roots will be undermined, the vigorous
boughs will sway pathetically, and with a roar the
tree will crash forward, a hopeless victim to an insatiate
greed.
Why the river selected this particular spot to vent his
vindictiveness upon, we can never know. It may have been a particularly
toothsome morsel, or there may have been a cause long years before the white
man's foot touched the river shore, why this mile of front should be blotted
from the earth's face, while across the stream, and a
few miles further down, nature saw fit to donate the
stolen soil where it never belonged. It reminds us of man's changes as well as
nature's, for where one man's hoard is steadily increasing, another is as surely yielding up his store.
The tree will stand a few years still to tell us of the past, but the little boy, with grey
streaks in his hair, bends over his desk in a city. The scant acres that time
has left of his ancestral home are
inadequate to justify him in trying to live upon them, and they have passed
into another's hands.
Perry turned first to the right and looked down them
levee, and then to the left, and shouldering his river again, he concluded to take the path to the left, as he could then
begin to fulfill his promise to
Ben at the outset of his watch. His beat extended half a mile on either side of
the path where he ascended the levee; and it made no difference which direction
he took first. It was his duty to walk
from one end of his appointed position to the other, throughout the night,
beginning whenever he chose.
He was a small man, slender, strong and wirey, with a pleasant black face and an
agreeable manner. Like Ben Simpson, he was fond of good clothes, but unlike
Ben, who was an elder in the church Perry wasn't a seeker after religion. The
love of gambling had a strong hold upon his nature, and although he enjoyed
going to church and funerals, he acknowledged that he liked balls better, so
the Mississippi's cleansing waters had never submerged his person and his sins,
except when he was thrown out of a dug-out one day, by the carelessness of a
companion.
No, Perry had never "got religion,"
notwithstanding the prayers for his conversion that had more than once been earnestly offered up by the congregation that numbered his mother among its members.
Perry walked to the northern limit of his beat, met the
guard of the next station, exchanged friendly greetings, and going to the other
end, passing the landing twice, noticing that everything looked serene in the
moonlight. As he again turned and was walking up the river, he passed the point
where the road coming from Sigma merged into
the road at the levee, and he paused to look about him. A man was riding leisureably
from the village, toward him, and Johnson was quick to recognize him. As soon as the horseman drew near enough, he called out cordially:
Hello, Burrill! Where you bound?"
“Why, hello, Johnson, that you, how do you do sir?"
" I'm tolerable, thank you, how's yourself?"
"Pretty fair, pretty fair. Fine night, ain't it?" Burrill Coleman clucked to his
horse, and started on his way; then turning in his saddle, he faced. Perry,
and asked:
"Have you got any tobacco about you, Johnson? I clean forgot to get some before I left town, and I don't believe I can wait till I get home for a chew."
Johnson laid his rifle down on the levee, and felt in one after another of his pockets. Presently drawing out piece of
tobacco, he started down the side of the embankment to take it to his friend, but Burrill checked him:
"Just wait," he said, "I'll come up after it. I ain't in no hurry, and you got a heap sight more
walkin' to do tonight than I is."
Coleman dismounted and hitched his horse to a fence post on the other side of the road.
He was not much above medium height, but he bore himself
with so much composure and dignity that he gave the impression of greater
statue than he possessed. He was always well dressed and neat, and there was
none of that loose-jointedness about him, nor slack fit in his clothes that is
so characteristic of his race. He was unmistakably handsome, too, though so
thoroughly negro in his type. His complexion was lust the color of the wrapper
of a good mild cigar, and his eyes bright, and quick in their movements. His
thick lips were partly hidden by his short jetty moustache, and his nose
unusually high, though wide, for a darkey's, indicated strength and tenacity.
Altogether, such an intelligent face for a negro is seldom seen, nor such
command over people's respect as he possessed, is often felt. When his horse,
as well kept and as handsome of its kind as Burrill was of his, was secured, he
climbed up the levee, swinging a lantern in his hand as he came.
" Well, sir!" exclaimed Johnson, jocosely,
eying the lantern, " Burrill, you must expect a change of weather 'fore
you gits home; what is you carryin' a lantern for, this bright night?"
Coleman joined in his friend's laughter and answered: " Well you see, it's this a way: When anybody borrys something of
mine, and keeps it a year, the first time they says somethin' about 'turnin' it
back to me, I allays says, 'Yes sir, I'll take it along with me, bein' as I am
goin' that a way.' That," he added, "is one of the finest lanterns
you ever seen sir. It's a regular conductor's lantern. I bought just 'cause it
was so pretty. You see the glass is red, and makes the prettiest kind of a
light. Ever see a conductor's lantern lighted? Let me show you."
Coleman proceeded to light the lantern to show its
beauties to the appreciative gaze of the country fellow who had never lived nearer than eight miles to a railroad. While he was striking a match and
adjusting the wick, Johnson said, more by way of filling an awkward pause than
anything else: " You 'pears to take mighty good care of it; it looks bran
new."
"Oh, it ain't so new. It was second-hand when I
bought it. You see its all nickel-plated, that's what makes it look so
bright." Having succeeded in making the light burn brightly, Burrill held
it high above his head and asked proudly: " Ain't she a beaut?"
" She sho is."
"Now, you see," went on Coleman, "when a conductor wants his train to go on, he holds it so the engineer can see
it, and waves it this a way. Then, when he wants the train to stop, he does —
"
" Halt ! " thundered a voice so close that
Coleman and Johnson sprang back in dismay. Standing a few paces from them on
the levee was a man with rifle at his shoulder, ready to fire. For a moment
Perry's eyes, blinded by gazing at the colored light, failed to recognize the
assailant; then he called excitedly:
"Hello, Jim. Hold up there, it's me — Perry — don’t,
you know me, man. For God's sake, don't
shoot!" Jim's rifle slowly sank to his side, and Burrill laughed in
relief.
" By George! " said the new comer, "I
didn't know what to make of you fellows there with that red light, — when I
first seen you. I thought you all was some rascal tryin' to cut the
levee."
" Hump," muttered Coleman, contemptuously,
"you must have thought we was mighty showy in our way of doin' it."
Perry laughed, but Jim, putting his hand on his breast,
wagged his head seriously.
" You
all don't know what a turn you give me," he said. " My heart's just a
beatin' — "
" Well, try some of this to steady your nerves," Coleman suggested, with a return of his
equanimity, offering a flask of whisky. Jim took a long pull at it, and handed
it back to its owner with a smack of his lips. Burrill passed the bottle on to
Perry, then taking a drink himself, he sat down on the edge of the levee with
his feet hanging toward the road. His companions followed his example as he
asked:
" How's
the water?"
" Oh
she's fallin' fast now," answered Johnson. " Goin’ down
like the bottom had dropped out all of a sudden."
" She
can't go down any too fast to suit me," said Burrill. " I tell you,
sirs, I never feels easy till she's plumb back in her banks again."
" I don't know," drawled Jim, thoughtfully. " I don't never
feel scared much, when the levee's as strong and big as it is here. Fact
is, I don't see why they don't discharge us guards now, the water is fallin' so
fast. What they want guards on good levees for, anyway, Burrill?"
" Why
man, it's just this a way; sluffin' levees and crawfish holes ain't all we got to be afraid
of."
" Hum! " interrupted.
Perry, " I should say not. Why, Jim, you know well enough they give you
that gun and stood you up on this levee to shoot anybody that tried to cut it.”
" Well, of course, Perry, I know
that, but who they reckon would be fool enough to cut a levee? They'd know as well as anybody hit would ruin the country.
Burrill
laughed. "Why, man, 'taint nobody livin' here
that'd want to cut it, but just s'posin somebody had a weak levee in front of their house, fifteen or
twenty miles above here, and they'd take a notion to come down here and make a
little hole in our levee to let the water spread in here, and ease up the
strain up their way, don't you reckon it would
be a help to him? Or, s'posin somebody had two or three hundred fine
cypress logs back there in the swamp that they'd like to float down to New
Orleans, don't you reckon it would be money in their pocket if the levee would break somewhere close about, so the water would
come and lift they raft and help 'em
get it out into the river?"
"You
don't say!" muttered Jim in amazement. "Do you know, I never thought
of such a thing! Lord, Lord! You reckon anybody would be mean enough to 'stroy
a whole country, and drown out every cow and hog like that?"
Burrill
Coleman smiled grimly. "I have heard of such things bein' done," he
said.
" Well,
I just tell you what's a fact," began Perry, grasping his rifle nervously,
"them kind of people ought to be shot down in they tracks like wild
beas'es. I'd — I'd — if I'd catch a man on my beat, up to any such rascality, I
wouldn't show him any more mercy than I would a mad dog."
"You
mighty right," assented Jim, vehemently. " Well," he added,
after a pause, "that bein' the case, I don't keer how long they keeps us
men on the levee just so they pays me my two dollars a night. Sleepin' tas'es
just as good to me in day time anyhow."
As Jim was saying
this, Burrill began to hum a tune softly to himself. Perry heard him and said:
"Sing that, Burrill, that's one of my favorites," and Burrill commenced
with the chorus of that rousing song "I'll meet you in the City of the New
Jerusalem.”
Jim, a regular church goer, and Perry, both joined in, although the latter did not know all
the words, and the trio
sounded superb, floating out upon the calm night with the
Mississippi's mighty bosom for a sounding board.
Burrill sang in his strong, rich bass, while Jim
sang ordinarily, and Perry pitched
his voice as high as a woman's, and
hummed when he did not know the words.
With excellent voices, the rule among the negro race, it seems strange
that the world has never produced either a remarkable tenor or prima donna from
its ranks.
When the song was finished, Jim slapped his hand upon his knee and
exclaimed: " That was splendid! It does me good all over to hear such a
chime as that. Come, let's sing another."
Without hesitating, he began "Am I soldier of the Cross." This
hymn, too, was sung, and was followed by several more, when Johnson jumped to
his feet, exclaiming:
"Look here boys, I hates to tear myself away from good company, but
I got to be goin'. Ef the captain of the guards was to happen along about now, he might think us all was
havin' too good a time."
"I wonder who's the captain for tonight?" said Jim, getting on
his feet. "It might be Mr. Barrett; he ain't been now for more'n a
week."
" Well, 'tain't likely they'll be a captain out tonight. Everybody
seems to feel satisfied ain't nothin' goin to happen now the water's
fallin'," said Burrill, yawning.
“Well," said Perry, "captain or no captain, whoever he is or
whenever he comes along, I'm thankful to say he ain't caught me nappin' yet.
Whether he comes along at ten, twelve, four, or between times,
Perry's always been on duty o. k.”
Burrill picked up his lantern from where he had put it
behind him, as he sat down to talk, and extinguished it; then the three
darkeys started off in their several directions.
CHAPTER III.
"Virgil ask your father to please come to his
breakfast. Tell him that the bell has been rung for him twice, and every thing
is getting cold. " Mrs. Barrett spoke impatiently, but the little boy she
addressed, as he dashed into the room, was too much excited to heed her manner,
and scarcely caught the meaning of her words.
" Oh, mother, 'he can't come! He's out on the gallery
talking to Mr. Henderson and Mr. McStea. The landing was robbed last night, and
ever so many things stolen!"
" What, robbed! " cried Mrs. Barrett and Nellie
in one voice, starting from the table in astonishment. Little Stella,
apprehending that something dreadful had happened, lifted her troubled,
inquiring face, not knowing what to say. Mrs. Barrett and Miss Barrett, preceded by Virgil, hurriedly left the room to
hear the particulars of the robbery, leaving the little girl seated in her high-chair,
close to the table. Stella did not know what robbery meant, but she understood
what this implied thoroughly. She lifted her voice and shrieked: "Mama,
sitter, brozzer! Oh, somebody, come and put me down! " They had all
forgotten her helpless position, though, and the tiny maiden was abandoning
herself to despair, when Allen came into the room to bring hot waffles and released her.
She, too, ran to the gallery then, but too late to hear
any of the news, for her father's partner and clerk were already down the steps, and Mr. Barrett was saying, “If
you won’t come in and take breakfast with us, then, I will eat as quickly as I
can and join you at the office, where we can discuss this more fully and decide
what can be done."
The callers left, and the family returned to the
breakfast table.
" All we know," said Mr. Barrett, in answer to
his children's inquiries, as he unfolded his napkin, “is that several boxes containing freight were broken open, and Mr. Henderson
estimates the loss roughly between five and seven hundred dollars. It is the
boldest and most unprecedented theft I ever knew to occur in this parish. The
boxes were evidently opened with the aid of a crowbar, as one was found lying on the platform, and it is very
remarkable that this, which necessitated more or less noise, could have been
done without attracting the attention of the levee guards."
"Perhaps the robbers watched their chance, and
opened the boxes while the guards were at the further ends of their
beats," suggested Mrs. Barrett.
" Even granting that," said Mr. Barrett, "
the water magnifies sound, and the trees echo so ringingly, I do not see how
Perry and Jim could have failed to hear the noise."
Mr. Barrett ate as hurriedly as he could between his remarks
to his wife and children, and was soon on his way to the store where he
expected to find Mr. Henderson and Mr. McStea awaiting him.
The firm of Barrett & Henderson was one of several
concerns of the kind in the parish, owning vast tracts of land and employing
hundreds of colored people as laborers. Barrett & Henderson owned thousand
acres of cultivated land, divided into numerous plantations and managed,
including all ages, fully a thousand negroes. These negroes bought their
necessities from the stores on the various plantations, paying for them at the
end of the year, when cotton and cotton seed went to market. In this way, they,
like the similar companies, did an immense system of credit business that left
little for the small cash dealer to do. When there is no overflow, no cotton
worms, no drouth and no deluge from the skies, the merchant-planter, and the
darkey too, fairly coins money and rolls in wealth. On the other hand, when
circumstances agree to combine against him, the negro gets his food and
wearing apparel throughout the year, just the same, and his only trouble is
that he hasn't much if any money to spend for whisky and trifles at Christmas;
but the merchant has an empty safe and a regiment of creditors to confront. If
nothing runs through the little end of the horn, nothing can be expected to
flow out of the big end. The planter can bridge over a year or two of such
adversities well enough, and be fairly set upon hit feet again by one good
crop, but the tide of successive failures is hard to stem.
Barrett & Henderson's most important plantation,
Englehart, five miles from Sigma, was the largest of their places, and did the
next biggest furnishing business to the house in the village, where the head
office and the two chiefs of the firm were located. These two partners had many
tastes in common, and were warm, congenial friends, although they possessed so
many characteristics that were entirely different.
Mr. Henderson, ten years the younger, was married also,
and like Mr. Barrett, was a keen-witted businessman. He was cool and
calculating in his financial relations, with a belief that every man warranted a certain amount of watching, and having this perpetual doubt of his fellow beings in his mind, he reacted somewhat as a check upon the elder's more
generous trustfulness. He read his daily papers with a religious exactness, at least those portions that treated of politics the markets or casualties, but he looked upon the rest of the printed matter as he did upon the blank margins of the sheet — something put there to
fill up space, or perhaps, to cause women to waste valuable time, as he knew
his wife did, who preferred reading Paris or New York fashions to keeping up
with the price, of meat or flour. Mrs. Henderson was young, though, and her
husband hoped with time and gentle reproof to correct this failing of his
helpmeet
On the other
band, Mr. Barrett was what would anywhere be called a cultured man. In 1864 he
awoke to the realization that he was eighteen years old, his education hardly
more than begun, and the fact staring him in the face that he must go to work
for himself or starve. There were too many brothers and sisters younger than
himself dependent upon the scant remains of his father's shattered estate for
any of it to be devoted to further schooling for himself, so with the courage of youth, he
picked up his oar, and began paddling in the direction of the success he now
enjoyed. His way lay, at times, along rugged, turbulent places, but
hard manual labor never defeated him, and he looked back now upon his training
as the best discipline that could have come to him. During his youthful struggles he acquired a love for knowledge, and never lost an
opportunity of enlightening himself upon all topics, from then to the present
time. He was what could be called a self-made man, but he had had good material
handed down to him from a long line of ancestors out of which to make himself.
In
personal appearance he was decidedly handsome. He was much above medium height,
and rather stout than otherwise. He wore a short dark beard that suited his
dark hair and handsome grey eyes. His manners were deliberate and stately, with
that elegance of style that once prevailed in Louisiana among ladies and
gentlemen, but which has yielded to the careless good fellowship between the
present day man and woman. Mr. Barrett with his leisurely composure and
thoughtfulness of the minor comforts of others, made himself seem a little
isolated from those contrasted with him. Not so much in what he did, however,
as his way of doing it. Another man could open a door or a gate for a lady, or
assist her into a carriage, and there would seem merely a duty done, but when
Mr. Barrett performed these little courtesies, there seemed, at the same time,
a favor having been craved and a special honor conferred.
When
Mr. Barrett reached the office, the two gentlemen who had left him but a half
hour before were sitting beside the stove waiting for him. He took his
accustomed chair at his desk, and turned around in it to hear what Mr.
Henderson was saying.
"In thinking over the
matter," Mr. Barrett said "it seems so improbable that the goods
could have been taken without Perry Johnson being aware of it, that I can
hardly resist believing that he must know who the thieves are, even if he did
not assist them in the robbery."
" That is exactly what I have
believed from the first," said Mr. Henderson. " If Perry did not help
to steal the goods, he knew how to keep mighty quiet while the others did. No,
there is no doubt in my mind that both Perry and Ben got their share of the
goods.
" Oh no, not Ben," protested
Mr. Barrett. " Of course I blame Ben for not attending to his duty and
watching the freight himself as I told him to, but I believe him innocent of
the theft."
" He certainly seems
worried," began Mr. McStea, but Mr. Henderson cut him off shortly:
"Dudley, how can you tell
anything about a nigger, and a half-way preacher at that. You can depend upon
it, a darkey will always act his part well."
McStea said no more. He had been working for the firm of
Barrett & Henderson long enough to have learned some of the peculiarities
of the latter gentleman's disposition.
" But, Henderson, you must admit that until last
night Ben has always attended to his landing business scrupulously and entirely
satisfactorily. He has often had large sums of money, that the boats paid him
for seed, in his possession; sums far exceeding the amount of the goods stolen
last night."
Henderson was silent.
"If I may make a suggestion," put in McStea,
" I would say that the goods were stolen by some stray craft — a flat-boat or a dago's lugger — that passed during the night."
" That is plausible," Mr. Barrett said
thoughtfully, and Mr. Henderson inquired irritably:
" What if it was, Dudley, could those boxes have
been ripped open and the boards split without the levee guards hearing it, especially when everything was in favor of the
listeners? The night was perfectly calm, and the moon made almost as much light
as day."
" Perry might have dozed off. You know a darkey can
sleep any where or at any time," Mr. Barrett urged.
"But he swears he never closed his eyes from the
time he went on duty till daylight. And he says 'he saw no one but the levee
guards at either end of his beat, except a few people he knew, on their way to
church," Mr. McStea said.
"Now look here," said Mr. Henderson; "who
knew of the boat's landing, and putting off the freight besides Ben Simpson?
" Ah, that I do not know," said Mr. Barrett.
" I went to the landing myself, as you are aware, because I was
particularly anxious to see that the freight was properly stacked upon the
platform, besides my wanting to see Captain Hill. There were a few women standing on the levee when
the boat came in, but they went off, for they were not there when I crossed
back get on my horse."
"Do you know who they were?" asked Henderson.'
" Well, old Mingo Green's granddaughter — what's her
name? Ella, I believe — was one of them, and Sallie Jefferson was among the number,
but I scarcely noticed the group as I passed."
The three men sat for some time in deep thought, then Mr.
Henderson jumped to his feet.
"Here," he exclaimed, "this will never do;
we must go at this thing if we expect to get back the stolen goods."
" What do you advise?" asked Mr. Barrett,
slowly rising.
"Why, first of all, a thorough search of every house
on Lilyditch plantation! I hate to have to do such a thing on Sunday, but if it
is not done today, there will be no use doing it at all. Dudley, did you have
the horses saddled?"
"Yes sir, they are ready."
The party started out, followed by the colored store
porter, whose interest and curiosity prompted him to go along, and before they
were fairly out of Sigma, they were joined by Mr. Chaflin, manager of a plantation some
ten miles distant, and several other gentle-men, who had heard of the robbery,
besides the usual contingent, several boys.
The village of Sigma has very little to recommend it either as a place of business or a place of residence. It is one of the many dozing old towns put back from the river bank as a mother puts her child back on the bed, to keep it from falling over the edge. There are a post-office, a few stores, and half dozen residences where white people live, because the breadwinner of the family is either a doctor, a merchant or a teacher. There is a Knights of Pythias lodge, which used also as the school house, and a church too, here sometimes a preacher comes and delivers a sermon. These preachers are usually divinity students out for practice, or hardworked religious men with regular appointments at several other places, seldom finding a fifth Sunday or an extra day which can be devoted to Sigma. When a preacher does find an opportunity to come, the news is spread and a congregation is gathered from the surrounding plantations to supplement the one or two pew-fulls that the town can afford. People do not mind riding five or ten miles to church occasionally, even to hear an indifferent sermon.
Sigma has two
merits: The first it possesses together with the other swamp towns of
Louisiana, that is, the dearth of what the negro contemptuously calls
"poor white trash." The poor white man and the poor red soil exist in
the state, but their location is further westward and the river front is given
up to the dark man, the dark soil, and the well-to-do whites. One of the
strongest attractions of the extreme South, except, of course, in large towns
and cities, is the distressing element, the pauper.
Sigma's other
merit, or rather charm, is its long row of shade trees that grow on the sunny
side of the one solitary street. The few residences, neat and comfortable, with
their gardens of beautiful flowers and shrubs are at one end of the street and
the business houses are along the other, with the row of trees reaching from
the limit of the one portion to the last store in the line. These trees
alternating, first a china tree with its dark glossy leaves, and then a shimmering,
silver-leaf poplar, that at once throws into relief the beauty of the neighbor
and enhances the flashing brightness of its own dainty foliage. Yet, as is so
often the case, Sigma’s greatest beauty is for a time each year its greatest
drawback. Just now when Spring days are beginning to grow warmer, only here and
there the china tree's tiny lilac and purple blossoms have burst into
perfection, tender and moist, and they suggest, rather than proclaim perfume;
but by and by, when seventy or eighty trees all unite in distilling their
wealth of sweets, the air will throb with the power of the odor, and sensitive
nostrils will revolt at nature's extravagance. Then, later, weary ears will
ache, when the combination of the small boy, the pop-gun and the green china
berry is manifestly at large.
CHAPTER IV.
Mr. Barrett and his companions took no
time to heed the bursting of leaf or blossom. They rode over the two miles of
road, spreading between Sigma and Lilyditch Landing, without noticing any of
the things along the way that were invisible because of inevitable presence. As
they reached the path that lead from the levee to Simpson's house, that darkey
joined them; his yellow face expressive of anxiety and distress. " Hello,
Ben! Anything new?" called Mr. Henderson, seeing him approach.
"
No sir, nothin' at all. I ain't been back over there since you and Mr. McStea
was there."
"Come, then," said Mr.
Barrett, "we will go over now and look about." He spoke with his
habitual cheeriness, and dismounting, gave his horse to the darkey, who hitched
him to a little tree. Ben then took the other two horses from their riders, and
hitched them also, and the three gentlemen from the office seated themselves in
the skiff, and Ben sitting to the oars, they were soon lauded at the platform,
leaving the crowd collected at the levee, to stand there waiting for something
else to happen.
There was really nothing for him to
see, when Mr. Barrett reached the platform. He took the freight bills from his
pocket to assist him in making an inventory of what was lost, and scanned the
list and remaining packages. There were the barrels of flour, meal and coal oil, just he had
left them at dusk the day before and the boxes of meat were there too, but all
that was left of the dry goods, consisting of a box each of calico, check,
shoes, and men's clothing, were the empty boxes with their broken tops
scattered about.
While the gentlemen were talking to one side in undertones, Ben idly picked up the crow-bar that was lying on the floor near the empty boxes. He had seen the implement when he was there earlier in the morning, and had turned it over with his foot; but now he stooped and took it in his hands. He looked at it closely for a moment, and cried out in astonishment:
"Well sir! Mr. Barrett, take a
good look at this here crow-bar. Where you reckon it come from?" As the
darkey held it up for inspection, the gentlemen closed about him: Ben went on:
" You ain't never seen that thing before, is you? "
"
Well if that — Ben, who brought that crow-bar over from Lilyditch gin?
"God
A'mighty knows Boss."
" Isn't
this the one we had at the gin all winter?"
" It pintedly is," Ben
asserted, emphatically. " I'd know it anywhere. Don't you see here? I cut
this little mark on it myself one day while I was restin'. I picked up a file
what was llyin' handy, and tried it on it while Pete an' me set a talking'."
Mr. Henderson looked at Mr. Barrett.
"I suppose you agree with
me then, that it was some one on Lilyditch, who committed the robbery," he
said tersely.
Just as the gentlemen reached the
levee on their return from investigating
the platform, the manager and clerk from Englehart plantation rode up. The news
of the robbery had reached the plantation before these gentlemen had left, and
it was only necessary for Mr. Barrett
to relate a few of the particulars to them; then the crowd divided into two
searching parties, each starting forth in a different direction, Mr. Barrett
leading one end
Mr. Henderson, the
other.
Mr. Barrett led the way immediately to
Perry's house, and as he drew near, he saw
that darkey sitting on his
front step, the spring sun shining on his dejected figure. He arose to his feet,
and taking his hat off, even more humbly than was his habit, if that were possible, he bowed first to Mr. Barrett and then
to the other gentlemen of the party. Mr. Barrett got down from his horse
and addressed him kindly: " Perry, it is my unpleasant duty to make an
investigation of your premises," he
began, " and endeavor to discover
traces of the stolen goods, and if, as I hope, we shall find nothing to
convict you, we shall at least succeed in clearing you of all suspicion."
Muffled sobs within the cabin breaking
out afresh, made Perry look uneasily over his shoulder into the room; then he slowly turned his head back and
looked up into Mr. Barrett's face.
"God knows, Boss," he began,
his voice breaking slightly, "you
welcome to search this place from top to bottom, and I'll be glad to
have you do it. And, Mr. Barrett, ef taking it out on my back for not tendin'
to my duty better, will make you know how I
hates what happened last night, you can beat me like a dog, sir, an' I
wont say a word. I know I is to blam, an' I ain't going 'spute anybody what says I is; 'cause ef I hadn't promised
Ben I look after the landin', he'd a done it his self."
" Well, well, Perry, I hope your
distress at this unfortunate occurrence will teach you a lesson. I freely own
that I do not suspect you in the least, of being implicated in the robbery, and
when we have made such investigation as we deem necessary, I shall clear you of
suspicion."
The
gentlemen entered the house, and Perry seated himself upon the steps again,
scarcely noticing the remarks made to him by
the darkeys who having united themselves with the expedition, stood
about holding the horses as an excuse for being there.
As Mr. Barrett entered the room, Perry's mother, who was sitting near
the fire-place with her apron over her bead
to stifle her moans, arose to her feet, and dumbly taking a key, tied to
a dirty string, from her pocket, she extended it toward the gentlemen with an
old-fashioned courtesy. Each of the three white men instinctively shrank from
taking it, and Mr. McStea, seeing Mr.
Barrett's embarrassment, came to his rescue, and said kindly: " Oh,
come now, Aunt Nancy, brace up. No need of crying like this; uncover your head
and open your trunks and things, and we will very soon satisfy ourselves that
everything is all right."
The old woman did
as she was told, and opened first
one thing, then another. She voluntarily turned over the mattresses on the
beds, showing that there was nothing concealed beneath them but a few unironed
garments, left over from her last washing. There was nothing whatever to point suspicion upon the Johnsons, however,
except one pair of new shoes; these were found in the trunk that was opened
first of all, and caused Mr. Barrett's brow
to pucker with added worry. He looked questioningly at McStea, and that
gentleman hastened to reassure him. " This is all right, Mr.
Barrett," he said looking closer at the
shoes. " I sold these to her yesterday. You see," he added,
handing a shoe to Mr. Barrett, this is last winter's stock. Our new shoes were
ordered from Fellheim & Stein; this you see is a Newhouse & Son's
make."
There were but the usual two rooms to the cabin, the front
room, and the shed room in the rear, and with no ceiling overhead it was but the work of a few moments to pry into
the most secret recesses of the little house. It
had its share of newspaper, magazine and advertisement pictures pasted
about the walls for ornament; its average of dirt in the corners and its dust
and spider webs upon the rafters and other projections about the rough walls;
its liberal sprinkling of dirt-dobber nests wherever those industrious little
masons had seen fit to locate their residences, and withal the cabin was like
all others, differing from them scarcely more than one egg differs from another
in outer semblance. After the rooms were carefully examined, and delivered up
nothing of a questionable nature, the gentlemen went outside and searched the
chicken house, the pig pen, and the wood pile, but nothing indicated that it
concealed anything justifying doubt of Johnson's honesty.
Every house
and out building on the plantation, including the gin house and stables, was
searched, but to no purpose. In most instances the inmates willingly submitted
to the inquisition and only very few exceptions evidenced opposition. In one
case, a belligerent woman muttered so vindictively at Mr. Henderson, not to
him, however, that her husband gave her a slap on the mouth that made her
stagger.
" You
fool you," he cried wrathfully, "you ain't got the sense you was born
wid! "
It took the
infuriated woman but a moment to recover from his blow, and with a leap she
attacked her assailant savagely. At the first of the encounter the searching
party took refuge in ignominious flight, but as long as they were within ear
shot they heard a woman's voice raised in protest, and the sound of a strap
descending upon human flesh in response. Such little family interviews were not
of sufficiently rare occurrence, to excite either much surprise or sympathy
among the neighbors, so the searchers went on their way, and finally returned
to the store, not one particle wiser than they were when they left it, except
that it was evident that the boxes were opened with the aid of a crow-bar, and
that the said crow-bar belonged to Lilyditch gin, a building situated four or
five hundred yards from the levee where the crossing was usually made to the
landing.
The robbery
was talked of throughout the parish, and elicited no small amount of interest,
for such a thing had never happened before, not even in the memory of the very
oldest inhabitant.
The next day
Mr. McStea, with Perry and Ben as oarsmen, rowed down as far as Vicksburg in a
yawl, inquiring at every landing, if anything had been seen of persons carrying
what might have been the stolen goods, but no one was able to give any
information whatever upon the matter. When he reached town, Mr. McStea engaged
the services of a detective, who promised to do all in his power to discover
the stolen goods, but time went on, interest and curiosity wore themselves dull
with nothing new to feed upon, but not a trace of the robber or his booty were
found.
Dinner was
kept waiting for Mr. Barrett until nearly five o'clock. When the hour for
serving it arrived and he had not returned, Mrs. Barrett and Nellie, neither one
being hungry, agreed to wait for him; and after the waiting was begun and every
next ten minutes was expected to bring him, it was easier to continue to wait
than to take a decisive step in opposition to the hope that he would at any
moment come. The March wind was blustering and scolding without, adding by its
petulant gusts and peevish sighs to the perturbation of the ladies within.
"I
wonder if they have discovered anything yet mother?" Nellie queried over
and over again. I do wish father would come, or at least send us some message.
Suspense is so awfully hard to endure."
Nellie tried
earnestly to suppress her restlessness, but she found herself yielding to it in
spite of all her efforts. Sunday in a little village where there is no
religious service to attend is a tiresome day at best, and when there is
anxious waiting united with the day's enforced inertia, it is a great trial to
the patience of impulsive youth.
Had it been
any other day in the week, Nellie would have cut out a dress or an apron for
Stella, and in making the sewing machine wheels fly around merrily, drown out
the sounds of the fretful wind or hold her thoughts in check. She was one of
those energetic mortals who required employment to ensure repose of spirits,
and she usually chose her work with reference to the mood she was in. That
Sunday she was totally at a loss what to do.
She tried to
read and kept her eyes steadfastly the page, but every now and then the words would
dance into a heap and from their confusion the landing platform, surrounded by
water and scattered over with empty boxes as Mr. McStea had described it, would
stare at her and defy her to forget it. She tried the piano and played and sang
for an hour or more. The children came to her and asked her to read to them and
feeling sympathy for them in their loneliness, she did her best, that they at
least would be entertained; but Virgil devoted so much attention toward
catching an adventurous fly that had sallied from his winter quarters and was
taking a view of the outside world from the window pane, and Stella occupied
herself so assiduously in the equally fruitless task of making Virgil behave
himself and let the stiff little pilgrim alone, that Nellie put the book down
in disgust.
"Oh
pshaw!" she cried, " you children are no more interested in listening
than I am in reading! Come, let us make some candy."
Both children
wheeled away from the window all interest and enthusiasm, and Nellie gave her
commands.
"
Brother," she began, "you go to the china closet, and get the pecans,
and sister, you look in the sideboard drawer for the nutcrackers, while I get
the cups and waiter. Come, mother, I know you want something to do, too."
The scheme
was eminently successful. Every one cheered up and the children flitted about
their pointed tasks gaily. Soon all were seated around the chair that was to
serve as table ready to begin. Nellie picked up a nutcracker and held it up to
give emphasis to her words.
"Now mind
the rules," she began. " The first both cups full, will have to put a
nickel in his charity‑bank."
" Now,
sister," Virgil protested, " that isn't fair! Let's eat a few before
we begin, because I haven't had a one to-day."
" No, he
must keep the rules, mustn't he, mother? "
There
followed much banter and innocent laughter. As Nellie had suspected when she
reminded them of their self-imposed penalty, Mrs. Barrett was the first one to
forget herself and put a tempting piece of nut into her mouth. Virgil was on
the alert, and shouted: " Five cents for mother's bank, five cents for
mother's bank!"
Mrs. Barrett
laughed and promised to pay her dues, and not three minutes later, she had the
fun of catching Master Virgil. When the nuts were ready, the two little
children followed Nellie into the kitchen and watched her melt the sugar, and
stirring the pecans into it pour the whole upon a platter, a confection so
delicious that they could scarcely wait for it to cool.
Just as
Nellie bore the candy, ready to be eaten, through the dining room door into the
hall, Mr. Barrett entered through the front door opposite. As Mrs. Barrett
expected, several gentlemen came with him. Mr. Durieux and Mr. Wheeler from
Englehart came as they usually did on Sunday, and Mr. Chaflin, the sometimes
guest, was with him, too. Dinner was served immediately, and while all were at
the table the day's adventures were recounted to the ladies and commented
upon.
The Barrett
residence is one of the largest and handsomest homes in the parish. It stands
somewhat removed from the other houses in Sigma, by its large orchard and lawn,
and it is the last house on the wide, well shaded street. Its pretty
furnishings were chosen with regard to comfort in the first place, and with
beauty as essential but of secondary importance. Southern architecture provides
consistencies for summer, and for the most part leaves chance to the consideration
of winter's necessities. The large open fire place is never omitted, but
neither is the wide gallery across the front of the house, and frequently
entirely surrounding the edifice, shading both sides and rear, while the hall
through the centre, measuring from eight to twenty feet in width, according to
other proportions of the building, is considered of as much importance as the
bed-rooms or dining-room itself. Ventilation in summer is the chief result
aimed at, and when the few days of each winter come, that are cold enough to
send the mercury to within twenty or ten degrees of zero, and the icy blast
whistles through every crack around the great full length windows, the wood is
piled higher upon the andirons and the merry blazes laugh at old Boreas up the
wide throated chimney.
When dinner
was over and the family and guests had returned to the sitting-room, Mr.
Durieux declined the cigar Mr. Barrett offered him, crossed the room and took a
chair near Miss Barrett, where under cover of conversation about an absent
friend, he dropped his voice a little lower and asked: "Have you an
engagement for this evening, Miss Nellie?"
The girl
looked up quickly and blushed guiltily. " No — a — that is, not till after
dark."
" Will
you ride with me, then?"
" Yes
indeed I should enjoy it. I have felt like a caged bird, all day."
"Thank
you," said the young man, rising. " Shall I tell Allen to saddle your
horse? "
" Yes,
tell him, and I will soon be ready."
The two young
people left the room together, she to don her riding habit, and he, who was
almost as much at home in the house as she, to go to the kitchen where he would
most likely find the house-boy.
When Nellie
re-entered the parlor ready for her saddle, she went up to Mrs. Barrett, as she
sat talking to old Mr.
Chaflin, and said: "Mother, I am going riding with Mr. Durieux; Mr.
Chaflin will excuse me," she added, smiling upon that gentleman, and
glancing at Mr. Wheeler, she said: "You will be here when I return."
Both gentlemen arose as she spoke.
" No,
thank you," said the younger. " I thought of calling on Miss Carrie,
so will go there while Jules is riding."
" And I,
too, must bid you adieu," said Mr. Chaflin. " It is a long ride to
Willowburn for an old fellow like me, and I must be going."
Amid laughter
and chat Nellie and Durieux withdrew from the rest, and were soon mounted and
passing through the gate; then, as was his habit when alone with the girl, he
took up his favorite language and asked: " Quelle route préférez vous
pendre? "
Without
speaking, Miss Barrett quickly turned her horse's head, and waved her hand to
indicate the direction she meant to take. They rode rapidly at first, for as
the girl said, she had felt like a prisoner all day, and it was a relief to her
to feel her freedom. When she was with the manager of Englehart, Nellie was
entirely at her ease, and talked or remained silent as the humor struck her.
She had known him since the first day he came from New Orleans to Sigma, five
years before, to clerk in her father's store at Englehart, and she, little
thirteen year old school girl that she was, laughed at his strong French accent
and his nerveful French jestures. She had long since, however, become
accustomed to all three; the man, his speech, and his manners, all of which had
gradually modified with time and contact with the slower motioned North
Louisianians.
When Jules
Durieux first found himself amid strangers, his greatest longing for home was
caused by his yearning for his beloved mother tongue.
There was
only one French speaking man in the neighborhood, and he, a Parisian Jew, had
been away from his native land so long that he could scarcely carry on the
simplest conversation without recourse to an English word in almost every
sentence. One day, however; Durieux coming to the house to see Mr. Barrett on
business, chanced to hear Nellie's thoroughly American governess trying to teach
the little girl how to read French, and involuntarily he broke into a hearty
laugh, followed by an humble apology. The governess was a sensible young woman,
fortunately for her young charge, as well as herself; and one to whom self improvement
was a matter of constant consideration, so instead of feeling indignant at his
laughter as Durieux feared she would, she joined in it, and asked him to tell
her wherein lay her mistake.
" Simply
in your pronunciation Miss," answered the young man, "which is really,
if you will pardon me for saying so, ludicrous." Durieux spoke in his best
French, and the lady simply stared at him for his pains. She understood the
language thoroughly when it lay before her upon a printed page, or when
haltingly spoken by her old teacher at college, but when it came to French
from the tongue of a Frenchman, it was quite another thing, and Durieux
disappointedly repeated what he had said, in English.
"Then,
my dear sir," the quick-witted girl retorted, " in charity to me if
not to Nellie, you must help me to rectify my pronunciation."
"Thanks,"
Durieux answered, "nothing could give me more pleasure than to assist you
in every way in my power."
The
enterprising governess lost no time in consulting Mrs. Barrett about, what seemed
to her, a golden opportunity, and it soon became an established rule that Mr.
Durieux should come on certain evenings of each week to assist Miss Whitaker
and Nellie with the language lesson, and from that time the three formed the
habit of speaking French to each other that was retained by Nellie and Durieux
after the governess was gone.
Today,
neither Jules nor Nellie were in a talkative mood, and they swept on without
conversation. Nellie had chosen the road toward Lilyditch, partly because she wanted
to visit the scene of last night's robbery, but more because it was her
favorite way. She loved the river in all its phases; when it was tremendous and
powerful, as it was now, spreading a mile wide, or, when it sulked deep within
its banks, cowed and submissive. There was a little strain of character, too,
in Nellie Barrett that loved adventure, and she pointed out the path on the top
of the levee as a delightful place to feel that creepy thrill of fear,
subjected to her own strength and courage, that is so fascinating to youth.
As they rode
to the top of the levee, Durieux allowed the girl to precede him, knowing very
well that if left to her own will, she would choose the side next the water.
Her horse was sure footed, and he knew that she was a fearless rider. As soon
as they were well on top of the embankment, Nellie started her horse again into
a brisk gait; regardless of the possibility that a false step might send her
and her horse headlong down the levee into the water on the one side, or failing
this, rolling down the other slope into the road that was dark and slushy from
the effects of water that had seeped through the embankment, and lay across the
roadway and edges of the freshly plowed fields.
The vicious
wind of the morning had ceased chopping the river's surface into rough waves,
and dashing white caps, that broke against each other madly, and now the flood
of tawny water lay in its usual powerful silence. Where the water touched the
levee's side in placid stillness, reflecting every tree and cloud that bent
above it, there was no hint of the wonderful energy that out in the midst, was
hurrying huge prostrate logs down the current.
The tender
leaflets that were swelling upon every willow and cottonwood were too young to
relieve the sombre coloring of the view, yet here and there the levee's slope
was rejuvenated by patches of clover and delicate grass that had sprung above
the brown ghosts of a former summer, and the peach trees clustered about the
cabins dotting the fields, glowed pinkly with their beautiful blossoms.
The exercise
and crisp river breezes made Miss Barrett's eyes sparkle and her cheeks flush.
She was not a beauty, this fair young Louisianian, although her features were
regular, and her brune-blonde coloring soft and dainty; yet there were very few
who did not think her strikingly pretty. She was tall, and as erect as one of
the slender stalks in her native cane-brake. Her eyes were blue, with long
black lashes to veil them in thoughtfulness or frame them in interest or
inquiry. Her most charming feature was her mouth; it was delicately moulded
into flexible curves that could form into a smile as innocent as an infant's,
and sometimes into lines as firm as chiseled marble. Her teeth were white and
regular, and the whole, suggested a creation so pure, and so thoroughly
wholesome as to strengthen one's faith in humanity involuntarily. It was just
the mouth to receive tender reverent kisses, or to utter true womanly thoughts.
With these attractions he possessed two others, that proclaimed her a native
of the South; these two, were her melodious voice, and her ease of movement
that seemed as the grace of a water nymph.
Perhaps one
who looked upon her would have said that she was spoiled, or vain; but if she
was, she had a perfect right to be. For eleven years she was an only child and
was loved and indulged as an only child is likely to be, and when Virgil came,
and a year and a half later baby Stella, Mr. Barrett never allowed her to
regret their share in parental affection. As the mother's time and sympathies
were more and more absorbed in her babies, the father and Nellie seemed by
mutual consent to drift all the closer to each other, and a congeniality
developed that increased as the girl grew older, and became, with her bright
intellect, daily more companionable. As to the latter charge, if it ever had
been made, there was no reason why she should not be vain; and it rather added
to her merits that she was so little so; for she had been flattered and praised
since her earliest recollection, and now that she was a young lady, and a very
interesting one at that, her share of compliments was in no wise decreased.
Jules Durieux
came to Englehart to take the position of book-keeper and clerk, but his
dislike for indoor employment, and his love for planting, gradually drew him
from his desk out into the fields, where Mr. Barrett recognizing his talent,
encouraged him to cultivate it, and the result was that in a year or two he had
made his way from a subordinate clerk to manager of the plantation. He had a
great deal to learn about his new work at first, for he had had to exchange his
native fields of sugar cane for those of cotton, and the complicated
sugar-house for the simple gin-house.
Durieux had
lived all his life, except the years spent in a New Orleans university, at the
old place on the shore of one of the many bays that cut the southern coast into
generous scollops. His great-great-grandfather was one of the young men turned
adrift, homeless, when Grand-Pré was laid in ashes. Perhaps he was a friend of
Gabriel's, or perhaps even, one of Evangeline's lovers; of this Jules had no
proof, but he did know personally the gentleman who had told Evangeline's sad
story to the poet and urged him to frame it fitly to be handed down to coming
generations as a reminder of their pathetic coming to the land where
"Garlands of Spanish moss and of mystic mistletoe flaunted." Durieux
had often sat and thought of the unfortunate maiden beneath the branches of the
same giant cedar that had spread in protection, high above the sleeping
Evangeline as she lay dreaming of the lover she had come over such weary miles
of land, and —" through net work of lakes and bayous to seek " —
dreaming that her lover was near, when, in reality, he was drifting past her in
the darkness, all unconscious of her presence.
Durieux'
great-great-grandfather acquired wealth after he found a new home, and married
one of the greatest French belles then reigning in infant New Orleans, and it
was from this union of gold and patrician beauty that old Jules Durieux was
descended; but the aristocratic father, and grandfather before him had lived
in a style that befitted the sons of old Pierre Durieux and Heloise de la
Boissoneau, and by the time Jules was old enough to realize what it meant, he
understood that the once beautiful home, now needing, repairs so badly, and the
honored name he bore were very nearly all that he could rightfully call his
own. Neither his great-great grandfather's money nor his great-great grandmother's
beauty lasted until it reached his generation. In appearance he was like his
race; a small man, active, graceful and dark, with a quick tongue and a ready
wit spiced with a keen sense of the humor in life's ironies; and withal, imbued
with that strong pride which is the aristocratic Franco-Americans most marked
common characteristic.
Nellie liked
Durieux thoroughly, He was just twice her age when she saw him first, and that
thirteen years difference between them always made her conscious of a barrier
that separated them somehow, yet, too, gave her a right to look up to him as
she might have done to a brother much older than herself; and he, in turn,
accustomed to treating her like a child, as he did when he first became
acquainted with her and heard her recite her French lesson, did so often, even
yet, and alternately teased her almost to the verge of tears, or showed her
the difference due her young ladyhood; and she, taking all his moods as they
came, stormed at him in impotent rage one day, or appealed to him for his
opinion of her plans the next, and through it all, accepting his friendship as
an assured fact and himself as a necessary family adjunct, she was as
unconscious of her strong fondness for him as either Stella or Virgil were.
Thirty-one always seems such a mature age to eighteen, too.
CHAPTER VI
By the time
Nellie and her escort dismounted from their ride the short day had almost
closed, and the round moon was disputing possession with the transient
twilight. The lamps were burning in the parlor, and the fire which had been
allowed to die down during the day to a few coals, had had fresh wood heaped
upon it, and the flames vied with each other as to which should throw the
ruddiest light upon the group seated about the hearth. Miss Barrett went
immediately to her room to exchange her riding habit for more suitable attire,
and returning soon, together, Jules Durieux and the Barrett family went into
the dining-room and seated themselves around the table, where supper was spread
in true Sunday style. There was not a servant on the place, and the family ate
the repast of cold roast, cold biscuit, preserves and milk, supplemented by hot
coffee that Mrs. Barrett made on a little oil stove, with the freedom of
congenial friends fearing no listening ear or repeating tongue of another
social station.
No one was
hungry, for their late dinner did not admit of it; but they went through the
form of eating while in reality talking with far more interest.
There is no time
so favorable for a charming untrammeled flow of reminiscences as the hour
around the supper table, when the plates are pushed back, the napkins rolled
away into their rings, and every one feeling at liberty to rest an elbow upon
the board and lean forward to listen or explain. The hostess is entirely at
her ease, knowing that no one is waiting to wash the used dishes or for the
food that remains. The bright light in the centre of the board illumines every
face and the positions are such that each participant in the conversation is
within hand clasp of every other one. The nearness of persons seems to engender
the nearness of thought and makes the circle of wit more brilliant and
complete.
While the
Barretts' supper table was surrounded by its cheerful group, large and small,
for Stella and Virgil took their part in what was being said and ventured an
opinion or a narrative, here and there, there was a spectator without, watching
the changing countenances of the happy group within. He could hear no word of
what was being said, but the pantomime of bright faces and jestures was
rhetorical with the enjoyment the words must be creating. The man stood on the
front gallery and looked through the open hall door, on through the long hall
and through the glass paneled door, with its curtains drawn aside, into the
dining room itself. No detail escaped his quick attention; he noticed the
interested faces turned toward Mr. Barrett, who, with his back to the door,
seemed to be telling one of the humorous stories of which he had an unending
supply.
The man on
the gallery saw that Jules Durieux was seated directly opposite Miss Barrett
and that his eyes sought her pretty face oftener than they did any other object
in the room. He saw Nellie look up and meet his glance with a frank smile and
that little flash of her heavily fringed eyelids that was so charming, and
unconsciously a frown puckered his handsome brow. He placed his hand upon the
handle of the doorbell and almost lifted it high enough to cause the hammer to
strike, then dropping his hand he muttered, half aloud: "Too bad to break
up their merry-making! " Without hesitating again, he entered the hall,
hung his hat upon one of the hooks of the handsome hat rack, and went on toward
the dining-room door, the carpet making his footfalls noiseless. Softly turning
the knob of the glass paneled door, he threw it open and silently enjoyed the
surprise his sudden appearance produced. Mrs. Barrett, who sat directly
opposite the door, was the first to see him, and she exclaimed warmly: "
Dr. Allison! Come in, do. We are just finishing supper. Come and have something
with us!"
Mr. Barrett
arose and shook hands with the newcomer and invited him to take the seat that
had been placed at the table for absent Mr. Wheeler, but before he accepted
it, Dr. Allison thanked him and went first to shake hands with Mrs. Barrett. He
stooped and kissed the expectant little faces of his two adorers, Stella and
Virgil, and at last obtained a clasp of the soft pink hand that had drawn him
over fourteen miles of rough road as easily as a powerful magnet can draw a
small needle across an inch of space.
" I am
not hungry, thank you, Mr. Barrett," averred young Allison as that
gentleman urged him to partake of the roast and other food upon the table.
" I had supper before I left home, and really can eat nothing more."
He took the cup of coffee that Mrs. Barrett poured out for him, however, and
the general conversation was resumed.
As Dr.
Allison sipped his coffee and joined in the talking, he secretly wondered how
long Mr. Durieux purposed staying beside the Barrett hearthstone. He saw no
necessity for his lingering now that he had finished his supper, yet Durieux
seemed to have a great deal to say and plenty of time in which to say it.
How long the
group might have sat, oblivious of the flight of time, there is no knowing, if
Stella had not unexpectedly lost consciousness and nodded her head almost into
her plate. The little girl looked up in distress as the laugh went around and
almost burst into tears, in her embarrassment, when she discerned that all eyes
were mirthfully bent upon her. Mrs. Barrett helped her down from her chair, and
led the two young folks off to bed, although she and Virgil both stoutly
declared that they were not sleepy a bit.
As Mrs.
Barrett, with a child at each side, passed by Nellie's chair she said in an
undertone: " Leave the table as it is. I will come back and put everything
away," but Nellie smiled and shook her head, and when Mr. Barrett led the
way back to the parlor only Dr. Allison followed him. Durieux knew the ways of
the house, and lingered to assist the girl in her duties. Gathering up the
scraps, he fed the dog and cats, and returning, had the windows closed and the
doors locked by the time Nellie finished putting away the dishes containing the
remnants of the repast.
" Thank
you, Mr. Durieux." she smiled, when all was done and Jules picked up the
lamp. " Come now, we will join the others."
" No,
I'm going."
" Why —
" began Nellie, but Durieux' mischievous laugh and suggestive shrug
stopped her.
" Ah!
" he cried, flashing a teasing glance at her from his dark eyes.
"No," he went on, more exasperatingly than ever, " I won't stay
to bother him."
Nellie
blushed hotly. Taking the lamp from his hand, she darted into her room, calling
through her laughter as she slammed the door: " Well then, good bye!"
When she
reached the security of her own room, she put the lamp down and listened until
she heard her tormentor open the parlor door and tell her father and Dr.
Allison goodnight, and waited until she heard him go down the front steps; then
she straightened her blushes, and with no further excuse for remaining away,
she opened the parlor door and went in.
Shortly after
her entrance, Mr. Barrett reluctantly betook himself to his own room and his
papers. The children had been put to bed and Mrs. Barrett sat beside the lamp
table waiting for him to come, but when he entered, contrary to his habit,
instead of sitting down to talk to her for a while, he picked up a paper, and
apparently began reading.
Mrs. Barrett
sighed softly as she watched her husband. In the twenty years of her married
life, she had learned to read that handsome dignified face before her as
readily as an open book; but strange, in all that time she had never learned to
approach the reasoning power that lay behind it. Many a time desire had
prompted her to assay persuasion or argument against her husband's inmost
thoughts, but invariably his friendly smile disarmed her and her every idea
that she had meant to issue upon his resolution deserted her ignominiously,
leaving her helpless before the one intellect and will that she acknowledged
overwhelmingly superior to her own. It had never surprised Mr. Barrett nor
caused him to speculate upon the reason why his wife, who was an authority in
her social circle and a quick and ready wit in debating with others, should
never venture a second point of argument when conflicting with himself. He took
her submission, always, as a foregone conclusion, and attributed her
acquiescence to her habitual sweetness of temper. No doubt, too, there was a
grain of old-fashioned vanity in his makeup which left no questioning of man's
superior judgment.
Mrs. Barrett
sighed again. There was absolutely nothing that she could say. She saw her
husband’s dislike for Dr. Allison, and saw how hard it was for him to conceal
it. That one who was innately so gentle, so charitable and so just, should take
an aversion to another who seemed to possess these qualities marked a degree,
was a matter of frequent reviewing on her part.
Mr. Barrett was always courteous to this guest, but he never extended
the same cordiality to him that he did to other young men who visited the
house. His politeness was never absent, but it was always discernibly
perfunctory. They had never discussed the young man but once, and that was upon
an occasion when Nellie had gone to a party with him. Miss Barrett had all the
liberties of other girls in her choice of gentlemen friends and her father
seldom thought anything of her coming going.
Mrs. Barrett
was young and very pretty still, and liked to attend balls occasionally, for
there she met friends from a distance who came for the same purpose as herself
— to chat with acquaintances and perhaps dance a little; and whenever she
intimated her intention to go, Mr. Barrett cheerfully accompanied her.
Nellie's plans were never effected by her mother's. She always had an escort to
every entertainment, and Mr. Barrett often did not know who her favored friend
would be until the young gentleman selected drove up in his buggy and asked for
her.
The first
time Dr. Allison escorted Nellie to a dance, Mr. Barrett expressed his
displeasure; Mrs. Barrett was surprised, and asked what objection there was to
the young physician.
“Well, really, " Mr. Barrett laughingly
said, “I have no objection to the young man, except that I prefer for Nellie to
see him as little as possible."
Have you
heard anything against his character?" next asked Mrs. Barrett.
"No, I
have heard nothing against his character except that Sidney Carroll and Vincent
Minor are his constant companions. “We know nothing,” went on Mr. Barrett,
"of him further than that he is in the employ of the Lauren's Land Company."
"He
seems to me to be a very entertaining young man," Mrs. Barrett urged
tentatively, "quite above the average intellectually, judging him by the
brief conversations I have had with him. He is very handsome, too."
Mr. Barrett
laughed shortly and frowned. "That last is his salient drawback to
me," he said. "He is entirely too handsome and entertaining to an
inexperienced girl like Nellie. Much too handsome — that is why I regret so
much that he has ever been allowed to come to the house. We know absolutely
nothing of him, and I do not consider him worthy of cultivation. These showy
young men, brought up for the most part in college, usually have very little
but their surface polish to recommend them. “Think, my dear," he went on,
with real concern in his voice, "think what a complication would result
should our daughter fancy that she wanted to marry him?"
Mrs. Barrett
laughed, but deep in her heart there sprang a misgiving. She had scarcely
thought of Nellie as anything but a child, and as Mr. Barrett spoke there
flashed the thought that she could rightly no longer regard her as such.
" Oh
well," said Mrs. Barrett, trying to be reassuring, "I think you can
safely put aside all fears of Nellie's entertaining such sentiments regarding
him. She has never shown a preference for any one yet."
" Ah,
but there is another side to the picture. Young Allison's salary is good, I
understand, but you must acknowledge that it would be something in a man's
favor to marry our daughter. It is this thought that makes me doubtful of any
lover who may come. I do not want the child married for her money nor her
social prestage. We don't know what sort of fellow this Allison is."
If her father
doubted his estimate of Dr. Allison's character and motives, Nellie did not doubt
her own. In the ten months of her acquaintance with him she felt that she knew
scarcely anyone better. True to that strange perversity that makes a child
conceal the most important secret secrets of its life with a parent, Nellie had
unconsciously begun to hide her in interest in him, and as this grew, her
involuntary diplomacy made her dissemble all the more jealously. That Mr.
Durieux guessed the true quality of her friendship with Dr. Allison was
embarrassing enough, but if her mother or father were to detect it, she would
feel indeed like a culprit. To Nellie it seemed reprehensible in a girl if she
showed a preference for a man who was not her affianced lover.
Dr. Allison
paid her unending compliments just as all the others did, but she scorned to attach
any interpretation to his words than that they were the amusement of a friend,
and because she found them the most gratifying to her of all she received, she
laughed them away all the more assiduously.
As a society man,
Dr. Allison was a genius. He was graceful and pleasing in figure as well as in
face, and had an abundance of small talk ever ready at his command to fill any
emptiness that might occur in a conversation, and, added to this, he was an
excellent listener. This last mentioned attraction was no doubt to the fact
that he was not a selfish man. He was willing that everyone as well as himself,
should be happy in the little things of life that so often prove a burden to
misunderstood humanity. No, he was not selfish, neither was he lazy; and he
never begrudged doing a friend a favor, nor did he often neglect kindly
attentions to a woman, whether she were handsome or homely, bewitching or a
bore. Then united with these virtues which were so profitable to him as a man
and as a physician, he had the talent of sympathy. If in social relations a
tiresome old lady recounted the merits of her children or detailed her personal
trials or triumphs, he never looked wearied, but gratified his persecutor with
his apparent interest until he could escape honorably.
In his
professional career, if it was his duty to cut a man's leg off and he felt no
more compunction than in dividing so much beef, his patient never suspected him
guilty of indifference, but ever afterwards regarded him with a tender
gratitude as a man who could understand another's pain. A supersensitive
conscience might declare such duplicity a sin, but there must be a clause
somewhere in the Great Code making evasion of this nature, though seemingly
against the ninth commandment, not only pardonable, but worthy of the angels'
recognition. Superfluous flattery is always sinful, but that flattery which is
neither more nor less than an absence of barbarity, and that acts like balm
upon a heart hungry for sympathy, is a blessed virtue; blessed to him who
possesses the nature too gentle to wound a fellow being, and blessed to him
upon whom the soothing influence rests.
Qualities
like these, taken together, and supplemented of course by the man's handsome
face, with its peculiarly expressive yellowish eyes, were what made every woman
who knew him love him. Whether the affection lavished upon him was maternal,
fraternal, Platonic or erotic, it was there always to a greater or less degree.
Miss Barrett
never doubted in the least that the estimate she had formulated of Dr.
Allison's character was a correct one. After the first few times of meeting,
when their interviews had consisted of the usual light chat and an adroit
passage at arms, wherein compliments were the foils used and laughing repartee
the cushions that made the thrusts ineffectual, he drifted into the habit of
talking sensibly to her, eliciting her quaint, self-formed methods of reasoning
that revealed a rather well-balanced mixture of womanly sagacity and child-like
confidence in humanity.
While Mr. and
Mrs. Barrett sat by the fire in another room, each silently thinking of the two
young persons in the parlor, those two were enjoying themselves in a manner
seemingly so innocent that only one deeply versed in the subtle science of
courtship would have detected signs that were portentous.
Wooing is and
always will be the most interesting form of warfare in the world. Often it
proceeds along the lines which Dr. Allison had chosen to pursue, where no guile
is used and the highest, purest sentiments are attacked. Often it is like a
campaign involving a trio of countries; the besieging, the besieged and a
disinterested spectator. The latter is generally the line of action pursued by
the man who is not taking his initial taste of Eros' shafts, and who
furthermore knows that the besieged is a fortress not subjected to its first
bombardment. The general of the besieging empire opens the maneuver in
attracting the attention of the empire to be captured by discharging a volley
of small ammunition upon the unsuspecting third kingdom, winning the esteem of
the coveted empire by calling attention to the nobility and honesty of his
purpose; showing forth unlimited reasons why the third party should capitulate.
He calls upon the object of his cupidity for advice and arbitration, secretly
sending out scouts in the meantime to discover every weak point in her citadel
or to find where her strongest guns are pointed; then, suddenly wheeling his
forces, with every power nerved to the attack bears down to upon the empire he
designed capture, and behold, the day is won. The besieged empire pulls down
her colors, and the conqueror's flag floats proudly aloft.
Dr. Allison
had brought some photographs to show Nellie, and, as he had often done before,
he was talking to her of his mother and sisters. He sat in a comfortable
rocking chair opposite the one she was in, and these were placed so that when
each leaned back, as one is supposed to do in such chairs, their two young
heads were quite half the distance of the room apart; but when he brought his
handsome head forward, as he often did, to point out some particular feature of
one of the photographs that she held in her lap, and she, in interest, leaned
forward to examine the peculiarity be was describing, his eyes, that were more
like splendid topazes than anything they could be likened to, looked up through
their dusky fringes into soft blue eyes near enough to make them droop their
fluttering white wings and hide tell-tale lights from view.
Nellie took
up a picture — the one that to her possessed most interest of all, and looked
at it closely again. It was the photograph of a still handsome woman of perhaps
fifty, and she noticed in it a strong resemblance to the living face before
her. Allison was pleased that she turned oftenest to this one and looked at so
intently.
"She was
a great beauty in her youth," he said, "judging by the praises I hear
from her friends who knew her then." He went on gaily: " And this
reminds me of sister's and Mamie's constant source of annoyance. Both of the
girls, as you can see by their pictures, are just as pretty as they need be,
and they naturally like to have credit for what good looks they possess; so I
suppose they have a right to feel indignant when some old friend of mother's
meets them for the first time and exclaims in amazement: “Sybil Allison's
daughter — can this be Sybil's daughter! Why you don't look a bit like your
mother — she was a beautiful girl!"
Nellie
laughed heartily at the inimitably funny way in which Allison mocked the voice
and manner of his mother's tactless flatterers.
" The
girls have heard this thing so often," he added, "that they almost
run as soon as any one announces an old friend of mother's."
"Your sisters
are pretty," Nellie commented, thoughtfully, taking up their likenesses
again, but they really do not look like your mother at all. There is not the
strong resemblance in theirs that there is in your face to the picture."
Nellie had no sooner uttered the words than their purport flashed upon her. She
looked up hurriedly and meeting her caller's merry glance, she colored hotly.
" Thank you! " Allison said with sparkling eyes. " I shall write
and tell the girls that one of us looks like mother, anyway."
Nellie
laughed in spite of her vexation, and Allison, quick to see that she did not
enjoy his joke, changed into seriousness, and said feelingly: " Her beauty
is not mother's only charm. She is without doubt the dearest, sweetest mother
that ever lived. No one ever was to a boy what she has been to me. She has
sacrificed many a comfort that I might have an education and study father's
profession." He was thoughtful for some moments, and then said: "
That is why I am at Lauren's Station. It is a means to an end, and as such I
must stick to it. I must help mother now, for she had to sell a good deal of
her property to pay my university expenses."
" It is
good of you to stay at Lauren's with that object in view," the girl said
approvingly. " I often wonder if you are not dreadfully lonely out
there."
Allison
caught at Nellie's words delightedly. " She often wondered if he were not
lonely." It would have been a dreary place, indeed, that would not have
been made elysian by the knowledge that she often thought of him. His spirits
rose, and he answered cheerily: " Oh, it isn't such a bad place after all.
Carroll, you know, with all his faults, is such a jolly, good-natured fellow,
that he could entertain a mummy, much less one who is anxious to be amused. All
three of us are fond of reading, and then there is the hunting and fishing. We
hunt almost every day in the winter and fish throughout the lazy summer
time."
"But how
do you manage that? The winter is their busiest time and the summer yours — how
do you keep each other company then?"
"The
days are long enough in summer for me to see all my patients and loaf too; and
in cold weather, when there is scarcely any sickness, I help the boys in the
store or on their books, and that lets one or both of them off for an hour or
two with me. Then, one of my greatest pleasures is my regular letter from
mother or one of the girls."
" `The
girls’, " interposed Nellie, quick to take advantage of him and wreak her
vengeance upon him for his teasing of a few moments before, "’the girls,'
always being understood to mean your sisters, of course."
"Now, I
didn't expressly say so," laughed Allison, blushing slightly. " You
see, I have several pretty cousins."
Yes, I
see," said Nellie demurely. " Tell me something of your cousins,
too."
"Gladly,"
assented Allison, not to be outwitted, " and you will let me bring you
their pictures to see also? There is one in particular whom I know you would
like just the happiest, best-tempered girl you ever saw! "
Allison went
on to describe the girl he was thinking of and to tell some of her bright
sayings. He was in the midst of relating an account of one of the many pranks
she delighted in playing, when the clock in the hall deliberately struck ten.
Allison paused, glanced at Nellie with his head tilted to one side, and
listened until the last stroke rang out; then, springing to his feet, he held
out his hand and said dolefully: "Good night!"
Nellie arose
too, and placing her hand in his, laughingly asked:" Won't you finish what
you were saying?"
He shook his
head solemnly. "No, this narrative is destined to be a serial."
Both laughed
with the light-heartedness of well-poised youth when stimulated by intercourse
with the opposite sex, and Dr. Allison took his departure.
CHAPTER VIII
"Mother,
this is the last week in August, and you know you said we ought to put up some
more preserves before the peaches are all gone."
"Yes,"
Mrs. Barrett answered, "I have been thinking about it, yet I really don't see
what we are to do. All last week Lillie was sick, and now this is Tuesday, the
tournament and ball are to take place one week from tomorrow; your dress is
only just begun, and besides, there are the cakes to be made for the ball
supper."
"Still,"
said Nellie, pausing for a moment to think, "the peaches cannot be put off
any easier than the tournament. If we don't cook them within the next day or
two, there will be none left to preserve. Couldn't you work on the dress by
yourself today, and let me make the preserves?"
" Yes, I
could, very well; but you must remember that you promised to go with Carrie and
Ruth to see the Gun Club practice this evening."
"Yes, so
I did," mused the girl, trying to map out a plan by which she could
accomplish all that she wanted to do, within the limited space of time left to
her. " Well," she finally concluded, "I will try to do it any
way. I think I can be through with the fruit by five o'clock, and then can get
ready quickly, and go with the girls to see the practice, too."
She arose
from her place at the breakfast table, where she had lingered to talk to her
mother after the other members of the family had gone, and went cheerily to her
room to clean it up and put everything to rights, by the time Allen should have
gathered the peaches. Virgil and Stella caught sight of the young darkey as he
passed through the yard with step-ladder and baskets, and they ran to join him
in the orchard to help him pick up the peaches, and meanwhile help themselves
to all that they needed for individual purposes.
Virgil was
under the impression that he was quite a man, himself. His seventh birthday had
passed long ago, it seemed to him, and he was counting the months that must
come before he would be eight. He was his father's only boy, and that
knowledge carried great weight with it, united with the fact that he had been
wearing trousers for almost four years. He and Stella were remarkably good
children, and their devotion to each other was a sentiment that did one good to
watch. No newly betrothed couple was ever so absorbed in each other's society,
or more thoroughly soul-satisfying within itself than this little pair of
individuals. When they were together the world was so filled that there was not
room enough to admit of a third person comfortably. This oblivion of their
contemporaries, leaving them solely to the companionship of each other, their
parents and sister, made them unlike other children, inasmuch as their babyish
ways were soon shed, and they assumed the thoughtful, reasoning habits of their
elders. It was Virgil's delight to use the biggest words that his keen little
memory could grasp, and Stella, making it her pride to do whatever "
brozzer" did, the two had a command of the English language that would
have done credit to a college youth. The parrotlike peculiarities of childhood
had added a good deal of French, gleaned from Durieux and Nellie's
conversation, to their vocabulary too, and this acquirement they never tired
ventilating in Allen's and Lillie's presence for the servants' mystification.
It was a source of annoyance to the children that the two household darkies
spoke so incorrectly, and often the latter would exaggerate their
pronunciation and choice of words for the fun of hearing the rebuke and
contemptuous correction that the young philologists were sure to administer.
By the time
Nellie had her room adjusted into its accustomed neatness, Allen and the
children returned from the orchard, bringing two large baskets full of fruit,
which were deposited on the gallery extending along the dining-room and
kitchen. As Nellie came out and inspected the peaches, Virgil graciously asked:
“Sister, do you want Stella and me to help you peel?"
Nellie smile
covertly. She had seen some of their fruit paring operations, and knew that the
process as practiced by their small hands left very little more than the seed.
" No, thank you, think I can manage with Lillie's assistance, but if I
find that I need you, I shall call you."
" All
right then. Come Stella, let's go see if my red cactus is open yet," and
away the two little bundles of energy dashed, singing gaily as they went.
Nellie busied
herself getting ready for her day's work. She was an expert preserve maker and
took great pride in the fine quality and flavor of her product.
"Allen,"
she said as she turned her sleeves back from her wrists, " go into my room
and get my small rocking chair, and Lillie, you bring me a waiter for the
peelings, and also the preserve kettle. Mind now, that you have it perfectly
clean."
Nellie went
into the dining-room for a knife, and the two darkies hastened to do her
bidding; when she returned, the chair and other things awaited her. She seated
herself and directed Allen to place a basket of peaches on a low box beside
her, that she could reach the fruit without trouble, and spreading her big
check apron carefully over her pretty white morning dress, she began her
monotonous cutting.
" Come
Lillie," she called, " come and help me get the peaches ready, and
Allen can finish washing up the breakfast things."
Lillie came,
cheerful and smiling, always, and seated herself upon a box near one of the
baskets. She was very little older than Miss Barrett, and she looked up to that
young lady as a paragon of beauty and perfection. Lillie could hardly
recollect a time when she had not "been around white folks." She had
changed homes with the habitual restlessness of her race, but she was so well
satisfied with her home at the Barretts, that she had announced her intention
to remain with the family as long as she lived. She was a fine type of healthy
youth, with a complexion dark and glossy as sealskin. She had wide-awake black
eyes and thick pinkish grey lips that seldom closed over her white teeth unless
there was absolutely no one available to talk to.
Nellie had
never seen the colored girl angry in all the time she had known her, nor ever
worried about anything, great or small, except upon the occasion when her
little child had an attack of fever, accompanied by convulsions. If Lillie
regarded Nellie as the quintessence of perfection generally, Nellie in return,
considered her the personification of amiability.
The
light-hearted colored girl not only never got angry herself, but she never
allowed anyone to become angry with her. Her's was always the soft answer that
turned away wrath, and sent Mrs. Barrett away relenting, no matter how
flagrantly untidy the kitchen was found, nor even if one of her finest napkins
had been used as a hastily improvised dish-rag.
Lillie never
did seem to have meant to do wrong, and her patience and humility, were such
salient characteristics that her short-comings and sins of omission seemed
pardonable, simply because they were hers.
Like every
member of her race, Lillie was a lively talker, loving to give voice to her
ideas better than almost anything else on earth, and if Nellie would but listen
to her sometimes, her happiness seemed complete.
She had no
sooner seated herself and picked up a knife and a peach, than for want of
something more original to say she exclaimed: " My, but ain't these
peaches fine! They reminds me of when I used to stay at Mis' Belle's. She had
the biggest kind of a orchard, but she never had no such fruit as this
here."
Nellie paid
no attention to what Lillie was saying, and for some time both applied
themselves silently.
" Miss
Nellie," asked the girl, " why don'd you make Allen peel some of
these peaches; he can finish what little cleanin' up there is while they's on
boiling? Allen, you Allen!" she called before Nellie had time to state her
wishes in the case one way or another. " Allen, Miss Nellie wants you!
"
Allen came
forward and Nellie without appearing to notice the colored girl's little ruse,
gave her commands: " Take some of the peaches to the kitchen, Allen and
peel them; I am in the biggest kind of hurry, and want to get them on the
stove."
Allen did as
he was told, and Lillie tried again to attract Nellie's attention, but the
young lady had her own pleasant reflections for entertainment that crowded out
recognition of her loquacious admirer, and there was silence for half an hour.
Silence, if nature's bedlam of sounds can be called by that term. Bees were
droning over their work in the great Marechal Neil rose that covered the outer
side of the gallery; an energetic hen, accompanied by her brood was discussing
the palatable morsels obtained by the interesting exertion of a well-directed
scratch; a few lazy mosquitoes were dreamily practicing their crescendos, and a
saucy fly with a hateful buzz, persisted in descending upon Nellie's hand; a
bob-white was calling to his mate down by the bayou; a mocking-bird in the
mimosa tree was carrolling with all his might, and a redbird called his
"Theodore " merrily, despite the widowed dove in the distant
canebrake, who moaned out his aching heart. There was silence, if this be it,
but where is silence between the hours of dawn and midnight in this land of
bird and insect life, where each is blessed with vocal sounds to express the
joy of living?
Nellie's
thoughts were suddenly brought back to the present moment by an outburst from
Lillie.
"Well
sir! What you reckon 's up now?" She dropped her voice a little lower and
went on. " What do that nigger want around here, I wonder?"
Nellie looked
up and wondered too. At the back gate, a young colored man was dismounting from
a fine, well groomed horse, and preparing to hitch the animal to the fence. As
the man advanced, it was seen that his person was as well cared for as his
steed. His clothing was neat and well fitting, and revealed a spotless
shirt-front and collar, ornamented with a pretty four-in-hand tie. He carried a
small satchel swinging from his shoulder by a strap of a dark tan hue that
matched his complexion harmoniously. As he drew nearer, Nellie recognized him
as the son of a very well-to-do, and highly esteemed negro of the neighborhood.
She had never spoken to the young man except in returning his courteous salute
in passing on the road, nor had she ever heard his first name mentioned that
she could recall, and she was somewhat curious to know his reasons for coming
to the house.
As the darkey
came up the steps he lifted his hat and bowed with a grace that would have sat
well upon a man of more pretentious rearing, then hesitated, stroking his short
curly moustache unconciously, in his partial embarrassment. Nellie waited a
moment for him to speak and asked kindly:" Do you wish to see my father,
Bishop — I believe your name is Bishop, isn't it?"
" Yes'm,
Bishop is my name — Junius Bishop," he returned, bowing low again. "
No'm, I doesn't wish to see Mr. Barrett, Miss. I have called on the contents of
showing you a attachment for a sewin' machine, mam, that is pronounced a great
assistance in the runnin' of the machine, makin' it much more — a — easier for
to propel."
Nellie did
not speak, and he went on in the same pompous strain. “I am the onliest one in
this neighborhood —a — representin' the agency, and I would like very much to
show it to you or to Mrs. Barrett — a — because I feels very concious, mam,
that you will want to purchase one when you sees how much lighter it makes the
machine run." He stroked his moustache again and looked inquiringly at the
young lady.
" Well,
you see, Bishop, I am very busy this morning, and really have no time to
spare."
" Yes'm,
I observe you is, but if you could give me a few moments of your valuable
time,— it wouldn't take me long to show it."
Nellie looked
keenly at the darkey to see if his allusion to her `valuable time' was meant
as sarcasm, but although he was evidently filled with the consciousness of his
own importance, his demeanor was respectful, and she allowed him the benefit of
the doubt.
"A good
many of the white ladies," Bishop resumed, " has tried 'em, and they
all indorses 'em as bein' a great improvement. Won't you let me show you how
you manipulates it?"
Nellie was
amused, and little vexed too. The darkey's way of speaking was so patronizing
that it was ludicrous while it irritated, and she hesitated between her
resentment at his manners, and her curiosity in this hitherto untried interview
with colored aristocracy. Her first thought was to send him about his business,
as she felt his half-impudence merited, but his self esteem was so evident that
it became contagious, and finally old mother Eve's distinguishing
characteristic prevailed. She, who had lived in contact with negroes from the
time when her black nurse rocked her to sleep in her arms, up to the present
time, had never before seen a negro in the capacity of " agent." She
had bought many articles from many negroes, such as pecans, persimmons, birds
and berries; but those who brought things to sell, never came with so much
display of erudition and fashion as this salesman before her. She knew that
young Bishop was a school teacher on one of the large plantations near, and
that knowledge whetted her interest in the fellow's pretensions.
Nellie arose
and smiled as she caught herself instinctively taking off her work-apron. As
Bishop saw that Miss Barrett meant to let him show her his goods, he laid his derby,
which he had been holding in his hand while he talked, upon the floor, and took
the satchel from his shoulder.
Nellie led
the way into Mrs. Barrett's room, to the machine, and rather enjoyed her
mother's surprise at seeing the young "collud gentman " ushered into
her presence. Mrs. Barrett was sitting near the bed surrounded by the
confusion of silk and pleated chiffon that she was converting into a ball dress
for Nellie.
"
Mother, this is Junius Bishop. He wishes to show us a sewing machine attachment
that he has taken the agency for."
Nellie
announced his entrance with so much seriousness that Bishop's figure increased
perceptibly, and his manner became more dignified and gracious than before.
Mrs. Barrett nodded pleasantly, and Junius again displayed his Chesterfieldian
accomplishments. He took his implements from his satchel and proceeded to
adjust the spring he wished to sell, to the sewing machine standing near an
open window.
Nellie was
watching his movements and listening to his incessant flow of explanations when
she heard a stiffled giggle behind her, and turned around to find Lillie
standing there beaming with delighted curiosity. Nellie frowned to make her
stop laughing, and the girl hastily quitted the room to avoid an open explosion
of mirth. Lillie could not deny herself, however, the pleasure of seeing what
was going on, and as soon as she could finish telling Allen what "that
dude nigger" was doing, she returned with a painfully sobered countenance,
and wisely avoided meeting her young mistress' eye again. Bishop ignored the
brunette's presence as entirely as he did the kitten on the rug, and continued
extoling the merits of his wares.
" You
see now, mam, that's the way you adjusses it. Then you starts the machine — a —
and when the wheel begins to revolutin' good, it takes very much less zertion
— a — for to propel the machine — a — don't you know? All you has to do is to
press down with the heel and the attachment draws it up again itself."
Bishop emphasized his sentences with elaborate jestures and frequent little
affected gasps, which augmented his patronizing tones almost beyond Nellie 's
endurance; causing her to battle inwardly between her risibles and resentment.
" Won't
you please — a — just try it yourself now, Miss?"
" Get me
a chair Lillie." Lillie placed a chair before the machine, and Nellie,
seating herself, started the wheels to running.
"Doesn't
you find it a great improvement, Miss Barrett?" questioned the agent.
"Well really,
I do not detect any difference at all, scarcely."
Bishop
stepped back and assumed a pose of extreme surprise. "Why! I am
astonished! All the white ladies who has tried 'em pronounces 'em a great vantage."
Nellie arose
from her chair, concealing her indignation. It was something of a novelty to
have her veracity questioned, much less to have it doubted by a pompous negro.
" You
can take the attachment off," she said tersely. " I cannot waste any
more time."
Bishop looked
at her in helpless disappointment and her heart softened. Perhaps, after all,
she reflected, he had not meant to be impertinent. She watched him as he slowly
began to unscrew the affair, his prolific tongue silent at last.
"Mother,
shall we let him leave it on?"
"Just as
you wish about it; how much does it cost?" "Only fifty cents,
Madam," bowed Junius, his face brightening.
" Leave it on then, I will take it." Nellie procured the necessary amount, and handed it to him.
CHAPTER IX
Nellie
returned immediately to her work, followed by Lillie, and as soon as young
Bishop and his handsome horse were out of sight the colored girl's broad smiles
defied all further suppression and burst into a paroxysm of giggling.
"What is
that boy goin' to git at next, I wonder! " she exclaimed in the midst of
her mirth. " Looks like he can think of more things to git into than the
law allows. All last year he was peddlin' books — good books too, what I got to
leave with you, and when his school closed he got him a picture tent and went
to drawin' folkses pictures.”
" How
did he draw pictures? "
"Oh, he
had a regular cameo — one of them boxes what you look through."
Were his
pictures good? "
" Well,
yes'm," said Lillie meditatively. "They looked like you, but they was
too dark. He couldn't make no kind 'ceptin' them pictures, you know."
Lillie lost
herself in retrospection for a few moments and worked on industriously all the
while, but she could not restrain herself long at a time and soon took up
giggling again, followed by more chatter.
" Miss
Nellie, you'd a died laughin' if you had been at the picnic last — no twas
Sat'day before last — at the picnic what Junius' pa gave. I never had so much
fun before in all my life. Me and Allen both was tickled," she laughed at
the recollection. " You see, most all these here girls is trying to set up
to Junius 'cause his pa's rich; but there was two girls in particular, the `two
Annies' we calls 'em, what made theirselves plumb redicalus about him. 'Twas
Anna Wells and Anna White." Lillie had to stop to laugh and then continued
talking, with her habitual ripple of laughter throughout what she said. "
Yes sir! the two Annies they just tried theyselves courtin' Junius through his
little sister Blanchie. You know Junius got a sister about ten years old, and her
ma had her at the picnic, dressed fit to kill, in white organdy trimmed up in
lace and pink ribbons. Oh, she had on a ‘dike' I tell you, and she looked nice,
too; and first Annie White would take Blanchie up and treat her to lemonade,
and then Annie Wells would carry her off and buy her ice cream and cake. I tell
you, Blanchie had a good time once in her life, but its a wonder they didn't
kill her."
Nellie heard
a smothered echo of Lillie's laughter in the direction of the kitchen, and knew
that Allen was there, an interested listener.
" Yes
sir, I tell you, Blanchie was ‘in town ‘! Miss Nellie, did you ever see
Bishop's wife? "
" No.
Watch out there, Lillie, you left some pealing on that peach you just dropped.
You must be careful."
" Yes'm,
I will." Lillie attended to the peach in question and went on talking.
"She sho is a lucky woman. She's been had two rich husband's now. She had
a husband over in Mississippi what was well to do and be died and then she come
over here and married David Bishop. Her first husband had a store over near
Rockville."
" Get me
another pan, Lillie, this is too full."
Going for the
other pan did not break the thread of Miss Alexander's reminiscences. As soon
as she was again seated she resumed. "Dave Bishop is a good man,
too."
"Yes,"
assented Nellie, "I hear every one speaks highly of him. He has nice
manners, too."
"He sho
has. He ain't biggity with 'em either. He don't
put on a bit of airs — nothing like what his son does." Lillie went off
into a fit of laughing at recollections of the agent's pompousness.
" His son is young yet, and will most likely settle down and be more
sensible as he grows older."
" Well, I trust so. His pa treats everybody well, rich and poor
alike, that's why people likes to work for him. He's got people with him now
what's been his hands seven years. My Lawd, when Bishop rented Erin plantation
all by hisself, the people just crowded there so he had to turn some of 'em
off. They got to liking him when he lived on Captain Barringer's place and helped
him to manage."
There was a restful pause. " We are almost done now, Lillie. I'll
leave you to finish while I begin to weigh the fruit and sugar." Nellie began to
clean the stain, left by the action of the acid and steel, from her fingers with the fleshy side of
a piece of peach skin, and Lillie embraced the chance left by the few moments
in sight.
"Bishop's goin' to give another picnic Sat'day after next, and is
goin' to have his flyin' horses and a band of music, same as usual."
Nellie laughed. " And ‘same as usual' you want to go, and leave us
to make out on a cold dinner."
" Now,
Miss Nellie — " protested the girl deprecatingly.
"I pintedly does want to go, sho; but I'm scared Mrs. Barrett wouldn't let me off two Sat'days
in one month. I was studyin' 'bout I could get an early dinner if she didn't
mind, and have all the fun I want at the picnic too. That ain't what's
troublin' me, though," Lillie giggled. " What I wants is I wants your
blue challie to wear to it — the one you said you might be willin' to sell."
Nellie picked
up one of the pans. " Oh, that's it, is it?
Well we'll discuss that later," she laughed, moving towards the pantry
door. She had only gone a few steps though, when her progress was arrested by another
one of her serving-maid's sudden outbursts of surprise.
"Well,
sir! Now who all is this?"
Nellie turned
and saw the figure of a second dismounting darkey, differing in personal
appearance from the other as much as two animals of the same genus well could.
When he had hitched his mule to the fence, he opened the back gate and
sauntered in, swinging his hands idly at his sides. Reaching the edge of the
gallery, he stopped short, and clutching his shapeless old hat by the top, he
held it long enough to withdraw his head, nod, and thrust it into its covering
again; then, with the same hand, he deftly drew a note from his left sleeve and
extended it toward Lillie. Lillie put her knife and pan down and walked to the
edge of the gallery where the man had deposited his arm with an air of entire
repose that would have done Delsarte's heart good to behold. She took the note
gingerly by one corner, so as not to soil it with her juicy fingers and carried
it to the young lady for whom it was intended. Nellie placed her pan on a table
and opened the missive, a little fine line forming between her eyebrows, and
growing deeper as she read. She read it through twice, then returned it to its
envelope, and started toward her room, pausing in the hall door long enough to
say to its bearer: " Wait."
Instead of
going straight to her own room, however, she went first to her mother's and
handed the note to her, sinking into a chair near by to wait until she had read
it. It took Mrs. Barrett but a moment to learn the contents of the brief
communication, and she looked up inquiringly; but she failed to meet her
daughter's eyes, for Nellie had her head bent forward, and was thoughtfully
gathering the hem of her apron into a ruffle with a pin.
"Have
you answered it?"
. Nellie
laughed shortly. " No'm, not yet."
" You
will accept, I suppose," Mrs. Barrett said indifferently, as though
dismissing an unimportant matter, but she clearly saw that something was wrong.
" Don't you want to go with him? "
"
Ye-es," drawled Nellie, " I guess I would as soon go with him as with
any one else; but — "
But what?
"
Nellie
laughed again and blushed rosily. "Oh, nothing. Only I wish he hadn't
asked me so soon."
"Soon,
why you almost always receive offers of escort as soon as the invitations are
issued."
Nellie was
silent for a while. "It's too bad that a girl can't get all her offers at
one time, and then take her choice," she exclaimed ruefully,
Mrs. Barrett
laughed. "Um, there's the rub, is it?"
" Mother,
what would you do in my place? " asked Nellie seriously.
"
Well," deliberated Mrs. Barrett mockingly, " you see, this is a very
weighty matter — "
"Oh
mother! What makes you always ready to tease me? Whenever I come to you like
this, you always turn everything into a joke."
The girl's
sensitive nature was wounded almost to the verge of tears, and as usual she
proudly choked them back and shrank behind a shield of indifference. Mrs.
Barrett was trying the effect of a certain waist decoration, and scarcely
noticed when Nellie took the note up from where she had allowed it to slip from
her lap to the floor, and went into her own room to answer it.
As soon at
Nellie settled the question by replying to Jules Durieux in the affirmative,
she again hastened back to the regions of the kitchen and becoming absorbed in
watching the contents of her kettles, she dismissed the matter from her mind.
In the
afternoon, when the preserves were cooked to perfection and Nellie was filling
the last jar with the scalding stuff, a third negro rode up to the back gate
and another note was given to Lillie. Lillie was so accustomed to handling
notes that passed from messenger to her young mistress that she thought nothing
of the fact, except to boast to the other servants of the neighborhood of how
much attention her Miss Nellie had and how often she had more company than she
knew what to do with.
This time the
penmanship upon the envelope brought a deeper glow into Nellie's cheeks than
even the heat of the stove had done, and a brighter light shown in her sweet
blue eyes.
"Lay the
note there, Lillie, and tell the man he must wait," she said. "I
can't stop now." She screwed the last top upon its jar carefully; set the
hot thing on the table with its mates, and then read her note. As before, she
took the note to her mother and offered it to her, unfolded, saying with a
tinge of defiance: " Now, you see?"
Mrs. Barrett
folded the sheet and handed it back gently. "Oh well, dear." she said
soothingly, "what does it matter. You will enjoy yourself quite as well
with Mr. Durieux, and really I did not think that Dr. Allison would undertake
to come for you, when it is more than twice as far from Lauren's to Asola by
way of Sigma than it is through by the railroad. It looks unreasonable,"
she went on, " for a man to go to a ball by a road twenty-two miles long,
when he can get there by one only eight."
Nellie had
her doubts as to Mr. Durieux proving as interesting an escort as Dr. Allison,
and as for the distance to be gone over, youth seldom reflects upon the
unreasonableness of a plan When pleasure is the stake played for; still, there
was nothing for her to do now but to write an answer to Dr. Allison and tell
him that a previous engagement prevented her accompanying him to the grand
tournament and ball at Asola on the 6th.
There was a
big crumb of comfort left her, even in her disappointment, and this stimulated
her delightfully. Dr. Allison's note was dated "Sigma, August 29th,
3 P. M." and this was as good an announcement as if a courier had
proclaimed upon a brazen trumpet that Dr. Allison was in her vicinity and would
see her in a few hours where the Gun Club met to practice.
Nellie had
plenty of time after she finished preserving, to rest a quarter of an hour,
and then dress for the engagement she had made with her two girl friends.
Ruth and
Carrie did not wait for the Barrett carriage to be sent for them, but came
around to Nellie's as soon as they were ready, and sat in Mrs. Barrett's room,
talking of the all absorbing topics, the tournament, the ball, and their
respective dresses, while Nellie put on her hat and gloves.
The two girls
had gone into raptures over the materials for Nellie's toilette, and Ruth was
exclaiming for the fourth time that she knew it would be the loveliest thing
in the house that night, when Virgil and Stella dashed into the room in a whirl
of laughter, stumbling against each other as they came and finally throwing
themselves down upon the floor in an abandonment of mirth. Every one in the room
laughed in sympathy with the two little chaps, and Carrie, who was nearest to
Stella, caught her up in her arms and kissed her.
" Do
tell us what's so funny," she cried, " and then we can laugh
too."
"Oh, we
can't!" declared Virgil. " We promised Lillie not to give her away,
didn't we sister Stella?
"
" What
on earth is Lillie up to now!" demanded Nellie, tying her veil.
"
Stella, let's tell? "
" But
Birg, we promised not to."
"Well
now, you know she didn't mean we shouldn't tell mother," he said
persuasively.
Both children
laughed again and the girls fell to coaxing their secret from them.
" Now,
if I tell," began the boy," you must promise not to give Lillie
away?"
" All
right, we won't," the three promised.
Virgil jumped
to his feet and shoved his hands down in his pockets. He hesitated, glanced at
Stella, who clapped her hands over her mouth to keep from laughing; after
laughing again himself, be began: " Well, you know old Unc' Bednigo always
brings his bucket along when he comes here to help Allen work in the garden
—"
" To
take some of his dinner back to de chillun," interrupted Stell, giggling.
"And
after he had eatin' his dinner, and put his bucket on the shelf where he could
get it when he's ready to go home, Lillie slipped it, and emptied all he had
saved, out — "
" And
put a bick-bat, wapped in paper, in it! " chimed Stella, clapping hands
and dancing about.
"What
you reckon Unc' Bednigo is going to think when he gets home and looks into his
bucket? " chuckled the boy, cutting a pigeon-wing.
"Lillie
says she bets he'll want to whip her," said Stella with a mischievous
smile.
" Well,
I think he ought," laughed Nellie. " That was a real mean trick of
Lillie's, and I am surprised that you and brother would back her in any such
badness."
Stella tucked
her bead and tittered, but Virgil ruffled up like an insulted chicken and
retorted: " Lillie was right. She said she'd teach old Unc' Bed a lesson
about packin' off so much. She says Unc' Bed carries off most enough grub to
feed two niggers, and she's tired of it, too! Why sister, if she don't hide her
dinner till she's ready to eat it, he slips more than half of it into his
bucket as soon as her back is turned! Lillie says our cats and dog get mighty
few scraps when he's working 'round the place, and she's going to put a stop to
it."
Virgil's eyes
had grown large and dark with excitement, and his face showed a determination
to justify his favorite in her actions.
"I
suspect Virgil is about right." said Mrs. Barrett, looking up fondly at
her son, " Yet I am afraid Lillie is not always as considerate of the cats
and dogs as she is today. I shouldn't be surprised if `Miss Alexander's' beaux
and that boy of hers did not prompt her to play the prank on old Bedingo, as
much as anything else."
All laughed,
and the girls being ready, they left Mrs. Barrett and the children to further
discuss Lillie's consideration of their interests, and betook themselves to
the surrey.
Nellie
declined Allen's services as driver, much to his disappointment for he would
have enjoyed seeing the Gun Club practice, quite as much as any one, and had
hoped that he might go, from the time he was told to get the carriage ready.
The three
girls got in, two on the back seat and Nellie in front, to drive. The sun was
trying to see how hot it could be, it seemed, and the girls were glad enough to
reach the end of their short drive and draw up in the shade of the big pecan
tree, where two or three buggies and several horses were already standing.
It was the
same pecan tree near the river's bank that had afforded a perch for the happy
mockingbird the night of the landing robbery, and the wide band about its bole,
paler in hue than the rest of its bark, showed how high the river had lapped
its sides when spring floods were forcing their passage-way to the gulf.
The pigeon
traps were set a short way from the tree, and nearer to the edge of the bank,
bluff and almost perpendicular to the low murky water at its foot. The girls
saw very little of the shooting that was done immediately after their arrival,
for that time was taken up in exchanging greetings with the gentlemen who came
up to the surrey. Dr. Allison was among the first to shake hands with them. He
saw a golden opportunity awaiting some enterprising young man as soon as the
surrey appeared pulling its way over the ramp in the levee, and Nellie had
scarcely said "whoa," beneath the wide branches of the tree; before
he swung himself into the vacant seat by her side, and taking the lines from
her hands, said:" Let me hold them for you Miss Nellie; the shooting might
make the horse nervous and restless."
The girl
smilingly assented. The arrangement suited her very well, although she was not
apprehensive of any unseemly conduct upon the part of her span. There was too
much phlegmatic fat between Tipsy's and Toddie's glossy bay coats and their
nerves to admit of the latter being easily reached. She knew that the horses
would each set one hip bone higher than the other, and slouching against the
harness, doze contentedly until the small, firm hand of their mistress gave
them intimation that they might start homeward, and supperward.
There was a
full attendance of, the Gun Club that afternoon. There were to be but two more
days for practicing between then and the day of the tournament, when the final
match was to come off, and Nellie felt very much interested in the result of
the day's score. Her father purposed enlisting in the contest, and it was a great
pleasure to her to watch how true his aim was, and how steady his arm. He was
never taken by surprise, no matter in which direction the "pigeons"
or " blue rocks " were tossed, and never before shot better than he
did that afternoon.
Several of
her young men friends remonstrated with Nellie for the marked partiality she
showed her father's cause, and begged a transfer of her patronage to one of
themselves, but she only refused in each case.
"No
indeed," she would say, "Father's going to win the day at the
tournament. You just wait and see! Won't you father?" she cried as Mr.
Barrett came up to where she sat.
"Oh
Nell," exclaimed Carrie when the men were about to put away the traps,
" wouldn't you love to try to shoot at those little saucer-things? "
"Do you
really want to try? " Mr. Barrett asked, looking at the girl's sparkling
face.
" Yes
indeed! Nell, do beg your papa to let us try."
" Father
won't need begging if he thinks it right," the loyal girl responded, with a
fond glance at her handsome parent, and the result of it was, that our three
girls and several from the other carriages arrayed themselves nearer the traps,
and each who was brave enough to do so, assayed a shot at the swiftly flitting
"saucers."
When it was
Nellie's turn to try, her father directed her attentively, then called for the
spring to be touched; just as the blue rock sailed off gracefully, her
trembling finger pulled the trigger, and the "bird" fell, a shower of
fragments, amid a shout of applause.
"Hurrah
for Miss Nellie! Try it again! Set the trap for Miss Nellie!" came from
all sides, but they called in vain. "No indeed," she declared;
flushed and laughing. " I have won my laurels, and can't afford to lose
them in the same day!
Some of the
older men had gone homeward, but as the sun was not yet down, the young people
gathered on the edge of the bank, and practiced shooting at sticks thrown into
the river, until twilight, that loveliest part of the day, warned them to go
home, too.
Nellie had
often fired a pistol, and was a pretty good shot, as was one or two of the
other girls, Carrie, especially, and Carrie was still secretly wondering why
she had failed to break her pigeon, when she could hit sticks floating on the
water in almost every instance.
When Nellie
and her friends returned to the surrey, Dr. Allison insisted that he should
drive for her, saying he knew her to be too elated over her success as a
marksman to safely entrust with the lives of the others, and Durieux seeing
Allison's intention, crowded himself on the back seat to take care of Ruth and
Carrie, for he vowed Allison knew nothing in the world about driving anything
more spirited than a plow mule.
As Jules
entered the carriage he called to Arthur Wheeler: "Take my horse, old man,
and hitch him to Miss Ruth's gate.
Mr. Wheeler
did as he was bade, and not long after that, his own horse was seen standing at
the gate that little Carrie passed through oftenest.
The morning
of the tournament dawned at last, and as the sun reached high enough to peep
over the rose lattice at Nellie's window and send a shaft of gilt across the
foot of her bed, she awoke. For a few moments she laid thinking joyously of the
happy hours awaiting her. She heard Lillie in the distance call to Allen to
bring her some stove wood, and she jumped up, dreading that she had overslept
herself when there was so much to be done. She opened her window and studied
the signs to see what the weather would be. The sky spread above like a great
blue porcelain dome with a crumpled bride's veil drifting here and there and
suggesting, as bridal veils should, only smiles and bliss.
When fully
assured that there was nothing to fear from the elements above to mar the
success of the day, Nellie hurried to the kitchen to make further
investigations.
She found
Lillie at her post, with the leg of mutton roasting in the oven, and the
chickens in a pot on the stove boiling at full speed, while breakfast was in
course of progress.
When the
committee of arrangements sent their list of desired edibles out for
contributions, Mrs. Barrett, with her usual liberality on such occasions, wrote
down her name opposite "4 cakes, 2 gals. chicken salad, and 1 leg
mutton," and now, the cakes were ready on the pantry shelf, white arid
delicious, the roast was fairly under way, and the salad only had to be made.
Breakfast was
soon dispatched, the housework hastily done, and by eleven o'clock every one
was ready for the greatest frolic of the year. Virgil and Stella were dressed
and waiting with their hats on, and for half an hour had been restlessly
walking back and forth between their mother's room, Nellie's, and the kitchen;
then out to the front gate to watch the passage of pleasure seekers on the way
to Asola. Over and over they wondered how long it would be before they, too,
could get started. The surrey stood waiting for them at the gate, and Mr.
Durieux' buggy was hitched at the rack just behind it, while the little wagon,
containing Lillie, Allen, the contribution to the supper and the trunk of ball
attire, had been gone for some time.
All things
come to an end, however, even children's waiting; and finally Mr. Barrett
closed and locked the front door behind them and Virgil realized with a whoop
and an extra caper of his heeIs, that they were really, at last, upon the point
of starting.
Nellie looked
as dainty as a field morning glory as she walked across the rich green lawn to
get into the buggy. She wore a soft white muslin, with a wide white hat shading
her face with its rolling brim. A cluster of La France roses nestled amid the
lace near her rivaling cheeks.
The road was
in excellent condition; hard and level, with but little dust, for the June
rains, which had forgotten dates and lingered into July, had kept them muddy
until very recently, and the buggy and surrey could keep close together. They
overtook the little wagon before they were half way to Asola, and soon left it
in the rear.
If the young
couple in the buggy were enjoying themselves in anticipation of the pleasures
in store, they had no advantage over the young couple in the wagon. Indeed it
would have been hard to tell which of the two girls, the white or the black,
was in the more delightful whirl of excitement. Both were looking forward to
the different methods they would employ in drawing upon the day's stock of
events. Both would see, be seen, and hear, for there would be swains of the
colored race there too, in the capacity of waiters, valets and hostlers, as
eager to say soft nothings into dusky ears as there would be others of a higher
rank in the rooms higher in the house of entertainment.
Lillie was
perched on the seat beside Allen, dressed in her very best and tossing her head
with a daintier air than that which sat upon her in Mrs. Barrett's kitchen. She
knew she was assuming affectations, but she always donned them simultaneously
with her nice dress, and she was rather proud of herself for her ambition to do
so. These mannerisms vanished in the presence of white folks like dewdrops on a
hot stove lid, but there was no reason, that Lillie knew of, why they should
not be used to dazzle her associates.
She had
sprung out of bed when the first tap of the nearest plantation bell rang out
upon the moist morning air, and lighting a lamp to see how to find her clothes
she hurried into them; running from her house to the kitchen, she had her fire
started and her preparations well under way before Allen sleepily dragged
himself out of his own room. She had not seated herself from the time she
buttoned her shoes until she climbed into the wagon, yet there was not a
vestage of fatigue on her smooth plump face. When Mrs. Barrett was making the
chicken salad, Lillie snatched a moment to taste her breakfast, standing at the
kitchen table and rubbing knives between times.
"Sit
down, Lillie, and eat your breakfast properly," Mrs. Barrett remonstrated
when she noticed her; but Lillie only flashed her white teeth in a broad smile.
"La,
Mrs. Barrett, I can't never eat nothin' when I'm goin' somewheres. I is just
makin' out I'm eatin'."
"But if
you don't eat, you will be tired to death before night."
"No'm I
won't. I does just this very way every time I goes to a picnic or
anything." So Lillie went on with her work as gaily as if it were a part
of the day's fun, and had it all finished in plenty of time too. It would not
have done for a straight-laced housekeeper to have gone behind Lillie and
examined things too closely after she had deserted the kitchen, for she would
have found many things to shock her sense of what a well ordered kitchen should
be. She would, without doubt, have found a dirty dishrag or two here, a half
wiped pan there, and a little pile of dirt in every dark corner, besides the
seldom absent uncleaned pot, left to soak under the stove. But — ah, well, what
are such trifles when compared with a sunny nature, and that quintessence of
charity — the spirit that never irritates another? Better to go to a place of
innocent pleasure now and then than to stay at home always and fret over
inevitable dirt; for dirt is like the poor, we have it always with us here and
a whole eternity of it to claim us as its own when this brief somnambulism we
call life is done.
Allen sat
beside Lillie with his shoulders humped over in a position of typical nigger
don't-careness, but he was nevertheless looking forward to a fine time, and to
an increase in his finances caused by an occasional half dollar gathered in for
sundry services he purposed offering young gentlemen in the way of holding
horses and brushing shoes.
Allen was
young, hardly more than twenty-two, and something of a dude on a moderate
scale. He was of considerably lighter complexion than his companion, being what
a colored person would call "bright skin." He was good-natured and
easy-going in his disposition, like Lillie, but he sorely lacked, Lillie 's
industry. Like most good looking young men of his years and station, which
latter had enabled him to attend the parish school throughout his childhood,
Allen Whitney was decidedly lazy. Mr. Barrett often told him that if he
expended as much energy in accomplishing work as he did in avoiding it, he
would achieve great things before he died. Allen had a fair understanding of
what Mr. Barrett meant, although he could not have given a dictionary
definition of each word used, and as was his habit when Mr. Barrett rebuked, he
grinned good humoredly and said nothing.
Lillie was
supposed to be going to Asola for the purpose of taking care of the children
and assisting them and the two ladies in dressing for the ball, and Allen was
going, so he would have said if asked, to take the trunk and portion of the
supper and to look after the horses; and unmistakably they each would attend
conscientiously to the several duties apportioned them while there, and there
was no harm whatever in their using eyes and ears incidentally after reaching
their destination.
In the
meantime both young darkies were exercising their vocal powers in the manner
habitual to them. They were too intimately associated with each other to be
able to find any very weighty subject to discuss, or any brilliant remark to
make; and moreover, there was but one clearly defined idea in either head. They
were on their way to the grandest entertainment ever given in the parish, and
with that thought surging through their minds, there was only room left for the
lightest and most trancient reflections.
"Lord,
this is goin' to be another one of them hot days!" Allen exclaimed,
mopping the perspiration from his face and neck with a red cotton handkerchief;
the new white silk handkerchief he had bought for the occasion was too good to
use, and he intended to reserve it until he could flash it forth in its
unsullied beauty, where it would produce the highest effect. The young negro so
seldom wore a coat in summer, that to have worn one on a hot September day like
this, would have been more than he could have endured. That, however, was not
the only reason it was laid aside. He wore a pair of elegant yellow satin
suspenders, and they were too attractive to be concealed beneath a coat and
vest. As Allen wiped the crystal drops from his own brow, Lillie followed his
example, giggled, and said in response to his remark: " It certainly is hot!
I wonder how those gent'men who is goin' to ride in the tournament is goin' to
stand this weather. ` Pears to me like they'd most perish."
" Oh
la," sniffed Allen, " they ain't a goin' to notice this heat. They'll
be so tooken up with the ridin' and havin' all those ladies lookin' at 'em,
they won't have the sun to study 'bout."
Both laughed,
and Allen touched up his mule to make her mend her gait a bit.
The road from
Sigma to Asola wound through cotton fields almost due south, and directly back
from the river. It followed a bayou, here and there, for a mile or two, then
turned back again through the fields. There was no part of its way when the
rows of cotton did not reach from the wheel tracks, away on one or both sides,
except where the road lead through a mile of cool, fragrant woodland. The
fields were still vividly green although the plants were rapidly maturing, and
the pretty diurnal blossoms gleamed amid the broad glossy leaves in their
peculiar way, pure white here, creamy, nearer the base of the stem, and on,
shading from delicate pink, to the closing flowers of dark crimson; and side by
side with this variety of tints, the tender squares stood bravely above the
plump green bolls, which in turn, stood above the dark brown burst bolls,
almond-satin lined, and overflowing with snowy, drooping fleece. The cotton was
opening fast near the ground, and in some places was ready for the cotton
pickers' nimble fingers, and his long white osnaburg bag.
As Nellie and
Durieux reached Pecan Bayou that ran through Asola, and followed its course
into the little town, they saw buggies ahead of them, and still others
following the bayou road and coming on behind them.
It was just a
quarter past twelve when they neared the town limits, and from that distance
the music could be heard. Even the horse seemed to be thrilled by the strains
of the brilliant tune the band was playing, and held his head with statlier
grace.
Nellie's very
finger tips seemed to respond to the queer excitement that only occasionally
heard brass bands can send quivering through ones senses. Little Stella had
never heard such music in all the five years of her life that she could recall,
and being already overwrought with anticipation and the heat of the long drive,
she threw her arms about her mother's neck and laughed and cried together in
childish hysterics.
The court
house lawn, where the tournament and shooting match were to be held, was
already crowded when Mr. Barrett and Mr. Durieux drove into the enclosure.
Several buggies and carriages had been drawn up near the elevated benches to be
used as additional seats, and as every available bench and chair was already
filled, the gentlemen drove up, also, and had Allen remove the horses, taking
them to the stable, and leaving the surrey and buggy near enough for the ladies
to be together while their escorts were taking part in the shooting. This part
of the day's program consumed the remainder of the morning; but did not, as
Nellie had predicted, bestow the honors upon her father. His score was good, if
not the best, and after all, beat both Mr. Durieux and Dr. Allison. Neither of
these gentlemen were to take part in the riding, and soon after the gun match
was decided, the Barrett party accepted Mrs. Hilliards' invitation, and went
home with her to dinner.
Every house
in Asola was dispensing hospitality to the throng of guests, and besides this,
long tables were set in the wide, lower halls of the court house, and provided
with all any one could desire to sustain the inner man.
There was a
brief time allowed for resting between the hour for dining and the beginning of
the riding, and the large jury rooms up stairs furnished as cloak rooms for the
occasion, proved admirable lounging places during the interim.
The brass
band was playing again when our party returned to their places on the grounds,
and it was but a short time before the interesting ride for the rings began. It
gave Nellie an odd little feeling of having been transported by fairies to the
days of Coeur de Leon, as she took her seat in the buggy, surrounded by the
intense crowd, and looked about her. The band clashed its stirring martial
strains, and two by two the knights in their gay courtier costumes and waving
plumes, rode, with lancers at rest, down the track. Nellie had no difficulty in
recognizing her friends, despite their unfamiliar attire, and joined the throng
in waving her handkerchief in encouragement as they rode leisurely past. When
the procession of knights made the circuit and returned to the judges' stand,
reining up, each to await his turn in the tourney, there was a sudden hush of
expectancy, and the marshal, mounted upon a magnificent black horse, rode to
the front, and delivered his address to the ladies. He retired at its
conclusion amid a stream of applause and then, one of the knights sallied
forth.
As each
successive young gentleman, with charging lance, dashed at fullest speed down
the course, some little feminine heart beat faster, and some sweet maiden's
spirits rose, as the ring told by its musical "click" that it was
upon the lance; or fell, as her glances told her that the coveted circlet still
hung upon its bracket, unsecured.
Nellie sat
with bated breath, watching every movement of a certain two of the
make-believe warriors, and a dawning dread gradually chilled her. These two,
the Knight of the Pelican and the Knight of the Canebrake, were riding with
equal success. Each had made his second tilt and the score stood six to six.
The Knight of the Canebrake was just riding forward to begin his third round,
and Nellie hushed her breathing.
Eagerly she
listened, and her strained ear distinctly caught the sound "click"; a
little fainter came the second sound, and fainter still the third, which was,
nevertheless, acutely heard.
Three more rings,
making the completed requirement.
The cheer
that went up would have announced the knight's success, had not her own senses
told her.
And then the
Knight of the Pelican came boldly forth. Nellie saw him glance at her and lift
his plumed hat confidently; she saw him touch his beautiful horse with his
spur, and with a roaring in her ears that shut out all other sounds, she half
closed her eyes and waited.
Another cheer
went up, and the girl closed her lips tightly to restrain the cry that almost
escaped her.
It seemed but
a few moments before the marshal rode to the front and announced that the
Knight of the Canebrake and the Knight of Pelican, having both secured the
complete compliment of rings, would have to ride again to decide which should
have the honor of crowning the Queen of Love and Beauty.
Nellie sighed
in relief and her spirits rose, but only for a moment. Second thought showed
her that the complication was not yet at an end. Durieux who sat beside her,
and one or two other young men standing near for the chance of winning some
attention, spoke to her, but she answered absently.
The second
tilt was ended, and she scarcely knew with what result. She watched the five
successful young gentlemen ride up into a group in front of the judge's stand
and hold a consultation. The two who had made the tie seemed to be discussing
something, and the others laughed and looked around in her direction. Each
knight selected an esquire from among the riders who had taken the least rings
and sent him to the lady of his choice. Nellie saw two of the esquires coming
straight toward herself, and she shrank among her cushions in dread.
She felt that
total annihilation, anything, would be preferable to the ordeal before her.
As the two
young gentlemen reached her side, they bowed in imitation of the courtly days
of yore, when tournaments were the play of princes and red blood the trophy,
instead of scarlet rings, and one of them, taking his cue from the marshal's
graceful address, began in stilted dignity: "Fairest lady of this fairest
of earthly realms, Sir Knight of the Pelican sends me with the petition that
you deign to accept the crown his valiant hand has won for your peerless brow.
He — "
" For
gracious sake hush, Jim," the other 'squire interposed in an exaggerated
stage whisper, nudging him with his elbow. " Do give me a chance." He
summarily pulled his opponent back by the sleeve and stepped into his place
before the blushing girl. " Noblest lady in the land," he continued,
assuming an heroic attitude and placing his hand over the region of his heart,
"Sir Knight of the Canebrake craves that your ladyship will bend from your
lofty heights and look down in pity upon his yearning heart on this royal
occasion. Allow him to offer you the honors he has won."
The young
fellow overdid his part, as he intended, so ludicrously that those near enough
to see him and hear his words broke into a merry laugh.
Nellie cast
an appealing look upon her father and he came to her aid.
" Oh
father," she cried in an undertone, " what on earth am I to do?"
" Why,
my daughter, the one who offers you the queen's crown has best right to your
consideration, because of his superior prowess. Do you not think so?"
"But
father, what shall I do with the other one? Of course it is the greater honor
to be the queen, but I was thinking if I took that one, it would make the girl
who is then offered the first maid's crown feel badly at being second choice,
but if I accept the maid's crown, almost any girl would be willing to be queen."
Mr. Barrett,
proud of her unselfishness, looked fondly into his pretty daughter's distressed
face. "My dear, why should you trouble yourself about this? You cannot
accept but one crown, neither are you responsible for the fact that both gentlemen
prefer to have you share his honors."
The tears
almost sprang into Nellie's eyes.
“Oh father,
you don't understand! I am so miserable, for I am to blame for it all. This
dreadful confusion is all my fault. Don't you see — I was foolish enough to
promise them both."
Mr. Barrett
started in surprise. "My child, how could you! "
Nellie hung
her head. " I never thought that was it. I promised without thinking, for
it never occurred to me that either one of them would be so successful.
Mr. Northcot
told me when he asked me to accept his crown, if he won it, that he had little
hope of success, because his horse was so nervous; he was afraid she would
become frightened and unruly; and you know, you said yourself, that Mr. Wayman
often failed to take even three rings. I didn’t think it would be possible for
both to win," she mused, in conclusion.
" Ah!
And so my daughter thought she would try to stay on both sides of the
fence!"
" Oh,
father! "
" Well,
well," said Mr. Barrett, sorry that he had rebuked the distressed girl by
his momentary sarcasm, "you must hasten and make a decision. Every one is
waiting."
Nellie cast a
hurried glance about her, and shrank further back froth the merry quisical eyes
turned upon her.
"
Father, this is dreadful! How can I stand to have everybody looking at me this
way! Take me home — oh, please take me home. Tell them I am sick — anything.
Really my head aches violently."
"No,
no," remonstrated Mr. Barrett kindly, "that would never do. You must
not let your day be spoiled by this. You have been looking forward to tonight's
ball for a month. Come, I will speak to the gentlemen and try to effect an
explanation. What shall you tell them, yourself?"
Nellie's brow
contracted for a moment in deep thought. She lifted her troubled eyes. "
Wouldn't it be best to tell the gentlemen exactly how it was? Mr. Barrett
smiled, pleased with her decision. He thought if her sweet girlish candor could
not explain away the difficulty and restore good feeling, nothing else could.
" Very well
then," he said, " I will go to the gentlemen and ask them to decide
between themselves which shall crown you."
As Mr.
Barrett joined the two squires and with them went in the direction of the waiting
knights, Durieux, who had gotten out of the buggy when he saw that Nellie
wanted to talk to her father, again took his place and opened such a fire of
light chatter that the girl partially forgot her dilemma until Mr. Barrett
returned.
" They
have decided to ride over again," that gentleman said, as be came to her,
"and for the sake of the girl whom the unsuccessful knight must choose,
they have agreed to say that the hesitation was due to a mistake causing
another tie."
"You
precious darling!" exclaimed the grateful girl, " I knew you could
help me out! But tell me," she added, more seriously, " do they seem
angry with me?"
Mr. Barrett
laughed. " Neither one is any too well pleased. I think you will have to
be an extraordinarily good girl indeed to make pleasant terms with the one who
is defeated in riding this tilt."
" Oh,
I'll just do anything that's reasonable to make amends! I'll explain that it
was because I was a thoughtless little goose and not because I was wilfully
wicked. I'll say just exactly how it was."
" Yes,
but see here, Miss Nellie," put in Durieux, who had heard part of her
explanation to her father, "you said just now that you really thought
neither of them would be successful. Do you mean to openly express your doubts
of their skill to these gentlemen?"
" Ah, tenez-vous
tranquille!" Nellie cried saucily, returning to her French as her
spirits regained their equanimity. I refuse to discuss the matter with you at
all," she went on. "There, look, they are beginning to ride again!"
The tilt was
soon concluded, resulting in victory again for the Knight of Pelican. The
marshal came forward for the last time and proclaimed the names of the
victorious knights, and also of the young ladies who were to be the Queen of
Love and Beauty and her four maids of honor.
The ceremony
of crowning was not to take place until night, in the ball-room, and the crowd
having witnessed all that was to transpire before that event, dispersed to rest
and to prepare for the ball. The sun was just setting when Mrs. Barrett and her
party again repaired to her cousin's home and found that lady busily engaged in
serving iced tea to the crowd friends sitting on the gallery and in the hall,
where the coolest breezes were to be found.
It was
somewhat after nine o'clock when Mr. and Mrs. Barrett, preceded by Stella and
Virgil, and followed by Nellie and Mr. Durieux, entered the ball room. The
extensive apartment, which upon legitimate occasions was the court room, had
been stripped of its legal appurtenances and converted, as it had often been
before, into a place of enjoyment for our dance loving people.
As Nellie
crossed the threshold of the central door, voices on all sides were heard in
undertones, exclaiming: " The queen, here comes Miss Nellie Barrett —
here's the queen at last. Now we'll see the crowning, “and the dancing can begin."
Alvah
Northcot, the Knight of Pelican, was standing near the door waiting for her. He
hastened up, and offering his arm, was about to lead her to the dais on the opposite
side of the room, when Durieux interposed. "Not so fast, if you please,
Sir Knight. Just wait an instant until I can get a program for our queen and
put my name upon it. Ah, here is one now."
Durieux
intercepted the young boy who was distributing cards of the dance among the
guests, and took two from him. " If I let Miss Nellie go with you without
the promise of a set, my chances will be gone for the evening. Now Miss
Nellie," he added, writing as he spoke, "I shall have the first set
after the royal quadrille, may I not, — and this waltz on the second half?
Thanks.'
He bowed, and
extended the card toward her, but before Nellie's hand could touch it, half a
dozen larger hands were thrust into the way, and the program circulated among
their owners until the first side was closely filled with names.
"Say
boys," he cried, "you are delaying things dreadfully. Come; let Alvah
take Miss Barrett to the dais. Everybody is impatient to see the crowning and
begin the dance.”
Northcot
again offered her his arm, and together they walked the length of the room. To
Nellie the distance had never seemed so great before. With the eyes of the
crowd watching her every movement, she had that chilling sensation of a sleeper
who tries to rush from danger and feels that his feet refuse to move.
They were a
charming couple, these two. He, tall and heroically proportioned, with the
faultlessness of his figure thrown into relief by his close fitting knee
breeches of ruby velvet, and silken hose. His gilt embroidered zouave jacket
with his emblem bird emblazoned upon each front, and his wide lace collar,
fitting snugly over a silk blouse, which, like his hose, was of that pink which
tinges the summer horizon between sunset and twilight, and the whole gave him a
strikingly distinguished air, both noble and poetic. Nellie beside him, dainty, tall and slender,
looked the regal personage she represented, in her faintly blue dress, soft and
floating, revealing her flawless neck and arms and enhancing the beauty of her
majestically poised head.
As they
reached the dais, and took their places amid the pretty maids of honor and
their gorgeously attired cavaliers, a murmur of admiration was awakened that
rose into a loud cheer before it died away.
Nellie bowed
her graceful head to receive the wreath of forget-me-nots that proclaimed her
queen, and waited until her maids were crowned about her, then the royal party
descended to the floor, and being joined by the marshal and a lady from among
the spectators whom he had chosen, the initial quadrille was formed.
This was
almost the only set during the evening that was danced with any degree of real
pleasure. For after this, when all who wished were at liberty to join, the
crush was so intense that it amounted to but little more than dodging one's way
through the surging mass, to the strains of violins and harp, rather than
dancing.
Every one in
the parish was there; and besides these, three other parishes were well
represented, as was also the city across the river. At an affair given as this
one was, by two benevolent societies, the Knights of Pythias and Knights of
Honor, whose democratic principles embrace recruits from every strata of the
social mountain, it was expected that the throng would be great and varied.
There is no
tangible line drawn among social sets in this country where each man has all
the elbow room he can desire, yet there is a distinction felt by each class,
and these, coming in constant social contact, meet in genial courtesy, mingle,
but rarely mix. The enforced law of this heterogeneous structure is, that by
common consent, criminals shall be debarred from its ranks; but for the rest,
each set realizes its inherent station and abides therewith. Every one assumes
his best behavior together with his best suit of clothes, and going to the
place of amusement, seeks nothing else than pleasure.
Nellie did
not know even half of the people who were present, the greater portion of whom
she had never seen before, and one of her amusements during the evening was
guessing what names belonged to certain faces and wondering why it was that
she who had lived in the parish all her life, did not, after all, know all its
people. Neither were all the royal party her acquaintances. Her first maid of
honor was her dearest girl friend, Carrie; and this pretty maiden, having
consoled the Knight of the Canebrake by accepting the distinction she could
not, harmony seemed restored. The second maid of honor, a beautiful Jewess whom
Nellie knew quite well, was a girl of refinement and culture. She had come to
this land of the free to live with relatives because the family bank account in
Germany was not elastic enough to provide her and each of her six sisters with
dowries of a size to enable them all to marry men of their own station at home.
She was exquisitely dressed, and was admired greatly by many besides her Jewish
cavalier, and he, a man highly esteemed, was the son of one who years before
began his American mercantile career with a pack upon his back and a pair of
stout walking boots upon his feet. The third maid was a bayou-side belle of
sixteen carefree summers, with two leading ideas, balls and beaux.
As this
self-conscious young woman entered the room and was met by her gallant, she
tossed her head in keen appreciation of the importance of her position and
giggled with childish complaisance. "I hope I, haven't kept you all
waiting," she simpered. " Mama just looked like she never was going
to be ready."
" Oh
that's all right; " reassured her admirer, " don't anybody mind
waiting for you. I would a went for you myself if I'd a known where you was
at."
This
flattered beauty was quite as well satisfied with herself as any other young
woman in the house, and was equally contented with her favorite lover. She had
flatly refused to be sent back to school and by way of domineering over her
parents, held the threat of running away with this same lover constantly before
them. The young gentleman, for gentleman he certainly was if the prevailing
definition of that term is to be relied upon, was a handsome fellow, always
well dressed. He had never earned a dollar by the sweat of his brow in the
twenty-three years of his life; nor had he labored at anything more arduous
than winning at a horse race or a game of cats. He lived at his ease, as a
gentleman is supposed to do, and owned one of the handsomest, fleetest horses
in the state.
After this
dashing young pair came the fourth and last maid of honor — a girl who taught
school for the support of herself and mother as a profession, and sewed and
cooked when not engaged with pedagogic duties. She had, besides her erudition,
a genealogical table somewhere at home that showed her descent from nine
generations of representative Americans, and as many others of an older
country, including among its members soldiers and statesmen of no mean order.
Her knight was in every way worthy of herself, being a young lawyer with
excellent family connections and hereditary intellect sufficient to promise him
a brilliant future.
Mrs. Barrett
with a group of ladies sat near one of the great open windows, watching the young
people gliding about. At her right was Mrs. Hilliard, a woman with decided
opinions upon most matters, and not reluctant to express these when she felt
that she was right in her estimate of the subject under discussion. She was
several years younger than Mrs. Barrett and far more self assertive, yet there
was a strong personal resemblance between them and a great similarity of
tastes.
The lady who
sat at Mrs. Barrett's left was Mrs. Minor, at one time a famous beauty and
belle but now mostly a structure of petty affectations, former date education,
handsome diamonds, powder and a bit of rouge. She was a woman who, in her
younger days, had traveled and seen a good deal of the world with its company
manners on. She had come into it with the traditional silver spoon, and a
splendid one it was at that, ready for her, and she had spent much of her time
since bewailing the uncongenial circumstances which compelled her to battle
almost single handed with privations that she scorned to acknowledge acquaintance
with. Then, fate, not seeming satisfied with using her aristocratic nature for
a football, had added greater disappointment than all in the person of Vincent,
her only son.
Mrs. Minor
fanned herself with the same graceful dignity she acquired in the zenith of her
belledom, and lamented the degeneracy of society in general and of Louisiana in
particular.
"
Ah," she sighed, with an uplifting of her still bright eyes, "society
was not once what it is now! Never did I think to see the day when our class would
willingly mingle with such people as are here tonight. Think, Cornelia, of
mothers allowing their daughters to attend places of entertainment like this,
where if participating in a quadrille or lancers their hands must necessarily
come in contact with hands of men whom they would never consent to meet on
terms of equality elsewhere. Ah, things were quite different when I was a
girl."
Mrs. Barrett
winced slightly. She was the only one of the three who had a young lady
daughter at the ball, for Mrs. Minor's was married and at home with her small
family. Mrs. Hilliard, on the other hand, smiled behind Mrs. Minor's averted
face and wondered how that lady failed to know that her own son was one of the
few whom young ladies with the proper spirit, and Nellie Barrett conspicuously
among that number, refused to perceive.
"Do you
really believe," she questioned of Mrs. Minor, " that we are
deteriorating, or is it not probably due to the different view we take of
intrinsic worth? "
"Unquestionably
to the different views of today," Mrs. Minor returned, smiling
patronizingly upon Mrs. Hilliard as one too young to have previously judged of
such matters, and again Mrs. Hilliard's lips curved into a quaint smile. She
thought again of Vincent Minor and the manner in which he was faithfully
reflecting his father's aristocratic vices in a mirror less polished than that
sire had done before him. Mrs. Minor would have said, if asked, that girls were
too innocent in her youth to be aware that moral deformities existed; and if
asked how one could expect the son to escape inheriting evil as well as virtue
from his progenitor, she would have been shocked at the up-to-date woman's
question and shrunk from her contaminating influence.
Mrs. Hilliard
did her own thinking, and the older woman went on talking.
" What
is strangest of all to me," she said, " is not only that our former
exclusiveness is gone, but that our girls are allowed to attend these social
functions alone with young men. In my girlhood no young lady drove several
miles with a gentleman unaccompanied by a chaperone."
Mrs. Minor
appealed to. Mrs. Barrett. " Do you not regret, Cornelia, that this
deplorable condition of affairs exists?"
Mrs. Barrett
moved uneasily, feeling that this criticism touched upon her own method with
Nellie rather severely. She wondered if Mrs. Minor meant to take her to task,
but that lady intended nothing of the kind. She was looking at facts
collectively and comparing the times with that of thirty years ago, when she
was the reigning belle and Mrs. Barrett but a bit of a school girl. Mrs. Minor
repeated her question and Cornelia Barrett had to give her opinion.
"Really,
Mrs. Minor, I have never thought of it one way or another. I have simply
accepted existing customs. All of the other girls go alone to parties with
their gentlemen friends, and naturally Nellie has `gone with the
procession'." Mrs. Barrett laughed, and Mrs. Minor, shaking her head
sadly, turned to Mrs. Hilliard, who, as soon as she was confronted by Mrs.
Minor's inquiringly arched eyebrows and deprecating shrug, parted her lips with
her habitual decisiveness. "No indeed. I see nothing to deplore. I have
often thought how much it argues in favor of our youth that such a condition of
social liberties is possible. It may be necessary in some countries to keep
girls and young men under surveillance, and if it is, it only reflects all the
more credit upon our young men, whom experience shows can take as good care of
another's sister, as of their own. Comparing our methods with European customs,
I think it speaks volumes in favor of our men."
" And
the purity and common sense of our girls," interposed Mrs. Barrett,
stimulated by her cousin's vehemence and amused as she spoke by the horrified
expression upon Mrs. Minor's countenance.
Further
discussion of the subject was prevented by the approach of Vivian, a twelve
year old daughter of Mrs. Hilliard, who with her boyish partner, came up to
them.
"You
tired of your set soon," Mrs. Barrett said to her, smiling. " No'
m," the boy answered. We weren't tired but we had to stop because we
couldn't get along at all. The crowd is dreadful."
" Yes,
mama," said Vivian, " it is! Somebody stepped on my foot, and before
I could get over that, somebody else bumped against my back so it nearly took
my breath away."
"
And," put in her mother, " the moral of it all is that children
should not try to dance at grown people's parties."
The boy and
Vivian exchanged glances and laughed.
"
Vivian, where are Stella and Virgil?" Mrs. Barrett asked as the juvenile
couple turned to go.
" They
are asleep in the dressing room. Lillie made Allen bring her the carriage
cushions, and with them and the shawls she has made them the nicest sort of a
bed."
" Ain't
you sleepy, too? "
"Why,
mama! The idea! No indeed. I'm having too nice a time to be sleepy. I've danced
nearly every set."
"You
mean you've tried to," laughed the boy.
" Well,
I tried to then, if I must be so particular about the truth; but I enjoyed it
just the same. “My,” she added, laughing, " ain't it hot in here? And no
place to sit down either."
" Come,
let's go out on the gallery, where there are plenty of benches."
Vivian
Hilliard took her young friend's arm and together they worked their way
through the crowd to the cool gallery where there were seats in plenty, illuminated
by the rows of Japanese lanterns that swung from the edge of the roof, in
addition to the moon's brilliant light.
Supper had
been served in the halls below, and the second half of the program was nearly
through. The violins were playing a spirited polka and to its time Dr. Allison
and Nellie drifted, making use of the lazy walk-step alternately with the
glide. Nellie had danced so unceasingly at the importunity of her partners that
she was thoroughly tired, and scarcely noticed whither Dr. Allison was guiding
her, until he stopped at the door leading into the end of the hall, and laying
the hand he held, upon his arm, conducted her to a little balcony that stood
out from the hall at the side of the building. He found her a chair and sank
into another near by. The music went on in the ball room, for the set had
little more than commenced when Allison, knowing that the balcony was empty,
made good his opportunity to secure it for himself. There was only room enough
upon it for two people at a time and was intended more for ornamenting the
handsome court-house than for actual utility. It was so delightfully restful
out there as compared with the brilliant lights and heat within that for a time
both young people sat in silence. Nellie sighed in pure relief for this oasis
in the wilderness of sounds and mirth, and her companion arose and turned his
chair around, placing it nearer the girl's and so that it fronted the long open
window giving egress to their retreat. When his chair was arranged and he
seated again, he leaned forward and eagerly looked upon Nellie's moon-illumined
face.
" Are
you tired much?" he murmured.
The words
were so common-place that they might have been shouted above the noise within,
yet the tone in which they were spoken was so ineffably tender, that Nellie
started and looked suddenly into the speaker's face. There was only a glance,
and her eyes fell. She tried to answer carelessly, but the thrilling steadfastness
of those wonderful eyes, set her heart beating faster, and she spoke scarcely
above a whisper: " Yes."
She sat with
her head bent forward and her restless fingers opening and shutting her fan.
Allison watching her intently, rested one elbow upon his knee, and leaning toward
her, ruthlessly twisted his mustache, breaking out one after another of the
strands unconsciously. At last he spoke:
" Miss
Nellie," he said intensly, "heaven knows I have tried to keep from
telling you how I love you — tried not to tell you until there was some chance
that I can see, to ask you to marry me. Tonight I cannot help myself. I feel
that I would give the best years of my life just for the delight of telling you
how sweet, sweet, sweet, you are, and how passionately I love you!"
As he spoke
he leaned nearer until his lips almost touched her ear, but she sat so still,
her bead only sinking a little lower, that Allison started back in dread.
Miss Nellie!
" he cried, suppressing his tones, " for God's sake, don't say that I
am mistaken — don't say that you have seen my love all this time, and now mean
to throw me over ! "
There was
such pain, such misery, in his hurried uttered words that Nellie was dismayed.
She turned her head and looked at him again as she whispered reproachfully:
" How could you say that? "
Allison in
turn, read immutible love in a glance, and his heart beat with such ecstasy
that he could express his thanks in no way but by clasping her hand, and
kissing it fervently. A happy little laugh bubbled from his heart.
" Then
you don't consider me a fool? "
She, too,
laughed softly, joyously, and answered playfully: " I'm not so sure of
that."
"
Why?" he asked, too delighted with what her eyes had told, to heed the
words from her lips. " For wasting your time on such as I."
"
Darling! "
Allison again
squeezed the hand he had not released, and laughed softly.
Neither of
them had noticed that the polka they deserted, was over, and that the dancers
were promenading in the ballroom and hall, the scores of feet making a dull,
roaring sound as they moved ceaselessly around. A negro passing coffee among
the guests came toward them and Allison had barely time to drop the hand he
held before he stepped upon the balcony before them.
" Have
some coffee, Sir? "
Won't you
take some, Miss Nellie?" Allison asked, his voice sounding so unnatural
and flippant that the girl laughed, and in turn her tones seemed strangely
silly.
No, thank
you," and she laughed again.
Allison
sobered up. "Perhaps you would better," he said, the physician rising
superior to the lover. " Are you not very tired? "
" Will
you take a cup if I do?"
"
Yes."
There was a
meeting of bashful eyes, and soft laughter, and these two, almost beside
themselves with their new happiness, took the cups, and were once more left
alone. The coffee did do Nellie good, for it refreshed her tired body and
steadied her nerves so that she could bear her bliss with more composure, and
when the darkey returned with his empty tray, she put her cup upon it and said,
" Thank you," naturally. Just as she did so, she heard the negro
bandmaster calling the next set.
Nellie
hastily picked up her card. " Whom have I promised this Number," she
cried, consulting it. "Oh yes, to Mr. Durieux. Come, I must go in so he
can find me."
" Just a
moment! " Allison caught her hand again. "Let me tell you once more I
love you, I love you, I love you! Darling, won't you tell me that you love
me?"
" Nellie
showed through her eloquent eyes all the love she could not speak, but she shook
her head slowly.
" Just
one word," he coaxed, " only one? Can't you then say, `dear Ed'?
Won't you say that? — just ‘dear Ed,' once, that's all I ask," he pleaded.
Nellie felt
that she must not linger. She parted her lips, but the words would not come.
She lifted her hand that was clasped in her lover's strong, firm, fingers,
bringing both nearer, and pressed her soft pink cheek for an instant against
the back of his ungloved hand; then springing to her feet and taking Allison's
arm, together they somehow went the short distance that lay between the balcony
and ball-room; just within, they met Jules Durieux; he put his arm about
Nellie's waist, and glided with her amid the throng.
Allison went
back to the balcony and sat in the chair Nellie had quitted, pressing his lips
to his hand that still thrilled with the velvety contact of her fair face. He
laughed in his intoxication; and hated to break the delicious spell that held
him in bliss that was divine. If there was some way to make that pulsing caress
indelible, how gladly he would embrace it! He pressed his own cheek to his
hand as she had done, and then hurriedly, be went in search of the partner who
was waiting for him.
CHAPTER XII
Durieux
wrapped Nellie's soft, white shawl carefully about her before he helped her
into the buggy, and as he spread the linen lap-cloth over her silken skirts, he
urged her to draw her zephyr hood more closely about her head. Mr. and Mrs.
Barrett and the children were ready to start for home, too, and Mr. Barrett held
his reins, waiting, leaned out, and called, " All ready? "
"All
ready!" answered Durieux cheerily, and Mr. Barrett taking the lead, the
two conveyances rolled off briskly, leaving Allen and Lillie to follow as soon
as the former could climb into the wagon where Lillie sat nodding, a piece of
cake in her hand. She waked up with a jump as Allen gave his mule a tap, and
took another bite of cake.
Their long
nap in the dressing room, followed by their coming into the fresh night — or
rather morning air, for it was after three o'clock — waked the children
thoroughly and they fell to chattering in the liveliest manner. This would have
been all well enough if they had been willing to make their conversation a
duet, but almost every remark concluded with "Didn't it mother?" or
"Wasn't it, father?" which demanded constant appearance of attention
on the part of their sleepy parents.
Nellie and
Durieux revived, too, at first, as the cool purity of the air aroused them, and
many events of the day were gone over again in interchange of thought, but by
and by, as the night grew darker, and the fatigue of the long drive was added
to that of dancing, and the day's excitement, Nellie became more and more
subdued, until she sat in total silence. She was thinkng of the compliments
that had been showered upon her since the day's pleasures began, and
unknowingly, she was thinking that all of these combined, failed, when compared
with the delicious moment when the greatest compliment of her life was offered
her, — when Edward Allison, unable to withstand the inward pressure of his
love, had, against his will and better judgment, told her how precious she was
to him. She was thinking of all this, drifting off into a reverie that made her
oblivious of where she was, or with whom she was floating in a paradise of
sweet recollections that held but two beings — her lover, and herself to be
loved.
The man
beside her was thinking, too; hard, bitter, miserable thoughts. Never before
had his lot seemed so hard, his limitations so narrowed. He hated the fate that
placed him, a man of refinement, of culture and luxurious tastes, in the
semi-menial position be held: manager of a plantation where, day after day, the
worry of contact with thick-headed, rascally negroes was his hourly portion. He
felt that he hated the whole race of miserable mongrels, whose sense of honor
was little broader, little higher than the lowest of brutes. He hated the
thought that with the coming of the day, the same eternal vigilance, which was
the only price of liberty for the white man who hired the negro, must begin and
go monotonously over again.
He hated the
circumstances that made him poor — made him dependent upon his constant
exertions for his daily bread, and left him with so little to lay aside for the
proverbial rainy day. All his existence seemed so contracted, so hard, so
pregnant with the reason why life was not worth the living!
He hated his
pride — the one strong legacy inherited from his ancestors. This had once been
a source of — self-congratulation, and he was content to think that in
descending to him it formed a bulwark in his nature. He had been content with
it, and with the courage that bore him up to labor and to wait; but now the
futility of it all mocked him like a grinning demon.
His pride was
the characteristic that had sealed his lips. He would not bring himself to ask
her love of the woman who could look down upon his poverty. He would not ask
her to leave her life of ease, of plenty, to share the restrictions that held
him in a circle so narrow. The woman he loved should never feel that she lost,
in becoming his wife. She should be elevated, or she should never know his
temptation to tell her of his love.
Nellie
Barrett had never in her life had a wish ungratified that money could command,
and Durieux almost hated the man who could trade upon her inexperience and ask
of her sacrifices that she now knew nothing of; and yet Durieux was just and
could not scorn his rival. He had not been blinded by his hope into belief in
future security. When Dr. Allison first came, he saw his danger. He watched the
two together, and saw the color come and go in her translucent cheeks, as the
guileless girl showed her growing preference for the stranger. In the beginning
he tried that strongest weapon against woman, ridicule, hoping with it to check
her growing interest, but only failed.
In his
justice, he could but acknowledge that Allison was right in seeking what he so
well knew she would scarce be able to withhold. He had foreseen it all. In calm
jealousy he noted every glance that passed between them when they were
together in his presence; and that night as he met them in the doorway returning
from the balcony, he saw that the die had been cast, and that he, too, must
abide by the throw.
He saw the
tell-tale light in the face of each, that was like the sting of a viper. With
smiling lips that covered an aching heart, he went to her, and in a voice that
sounded hard only to himself, because he alone knew that he suffered, he
claimed his partner. Allison, smiling unconsciously in his rapture, gave her up
with a little air of proprietorship that was maddening.
Nellie,
oblivious of the conflict raging within the man beside her, yet perhaps
esoterically influenced by it, drifted from joyous into troubled reflections.
She realized that it would be a long, long time before Dr. Allison could come
for her, and give her the privilege of being always by his side, and not only
was this waiting unavoidable, but to it she knew would be added her father's
disapproval to make the coming years drag wearily.
Durieux'
horse, which in his abstraction had been allowed to go drowsily on, trusting to
his instincts to keep the path, drew the buggy too far to the right, and
striking a small stump, aroused his driver abruptly.
Durieux
turned his head and saw that his companion had not felt the jolt, and was
still lost in deep meditation. He smiled bitterly as he thought of the surprise
the knowledge of his own misery would be to her. He pulled himself together
with an effort, and exclaimed in mock alarm: " Miss Nellie, say, wake up!
I'll be lonesome if you go to sleep! "
Nellie
laughed softly. ` I am not asleep," she said, "but I was beginning to
think you were, from the way you were driving." She laughed again and went
on: "Please don't ask me to talk, though, for my poor jaws fairly ache
with the excessive exercise they have had today. They feel exhausted; and I
have laughed until the muscles of my face seem set in an eternal grin. It is no
wonder we grow wrinkled and ugly is it, when we have too good a time?"
Durieux
laughingly agreed with her, and silence fell between them again, leaving Nellie
to return to her perplexity over one of the greatest puzzles of her life.
Intuitively she knew that her father did not like Dr. Allison, and why this
aversion existed she could not comprehend. To her it seemed the irony of fate
that two men, so noble, so true, so alike in all that was best, could fail to
understand each other.
The world had
gradually thrown off its gloom, the grey ether revealed objects dimly on the
horizon, and the trees that were nearest were now individuals. The sky was
becoming softer and paler, and lowly insects crept away through the weeds. A
partridge, followed by her half-grown family, scurried noiselessly across the
roadway, and vanished beneath the cotton's dewy foliage.
A plantation
bell in the distance rang out suddenly its solemn, dew-muffled notes, and Nellie
started shiveringly. Durieux watched her averted face, and as the bell still
uttered its deep-toned music he saw her shiver again. Determining to break the
silence that was at best only misery to him, he laughed shortly.
"Poor
little girl," he said lightly, "are you so sleepy? "
"No,"
she answered seriously, still looking away from him. " I am waking up now.
See, it is beginning to grow pink over yonder above the tree tops. And listen
to that bell! Isn't it all — ah, I can't express myself; it is something that
one cannot describe and can only feel — don't you understand — the powerful
silence, the awful stillness of it all? " She looked earnestly into his
eyes for sympathy she went on. "There is only one other thing as deeply
tragic to me as this — the dawn, and that is that great thing over there."
She waved her hand toward the river that was concealed by the breadth of the
fields and the trees that intervened. " In either case," she
continued, speaking in English as she always did when feeling deeply, "you
cannot see the power, you can only feel that it is there. Mountains tower
above, and you can realize the limit of their strength, and the sea murmurs and
warns by constantly restless waves, but the river, and this, is so silent, so
powerful, so alluring, that it almost makes me cry out in pain at the knowledge
of its tremendous might and my own littleness. If they were not so still, so
subtle in their coming, it would not seem so hard to understand, but they
represent that awful unseen something that bears us on against all struggle,
all opposition. We can no more check the flowing of the one, than the coming of
the other. Silently they both glide on and humanity seems, when compared with
the force that drives them on, so weak, so utterly in vain. Think how we plan
our lives, how we planned and carried out the great event of yesterday, and
how, now, with the dawn of today it is all done and cast away like a dead
flower. We, exhausted and unable to go any further, must stop to rest while
this uncontrollable something goes on, never ageing, ever, ever, ever, in a
seeming great circle, and we wonder if it ever had a beginning or will ever
have an end! The unfamiliarity of it all is what makes it seem so unreal. I,
too, feel strange and as though I did not belong to my body or any one
particular place. Such a yearning for something better — such a realization of
my own limitations, makes me almost cry out in despair I " As she spoke
she leaned further forward; still looking at her companion's down-cast face,
she touched his arm. "Do you not feel the awful mystery of it, too?"
" No!
" Durieux answered in his short, cold English.
" Mr.
Durieux! — "
Jules turned
his head and feasted his eyes upon what to him was the greatest mystery of all
that had ever emanated from a creator's hands. Instead of the cry that she
spoke of suppressing, he closed his lips tightly to control the groan of misery
that almost burst his heart. Her earnest face in its pallor showed white and
weird in the grey gloom, and her eyes, defying sleep, looked wide and black.
What would he not forfeit for one moment of ecstasy that was his if he dared
but snatch it. They were all alone, surrounded by the wide open fields, in the
midst of the languid dawn. Mr. Barrett had driven on briskly while he was lost
in abstraction, and was entirely out of sight. Durieux still looked upon her,
outwardly cold and calm. What would he not give for one moment in which to
clasp that tired angel-like form, with its restless, questioning spirit, in his
arms and hold her, his! With his passionate kisses to claim her as his own, if
but for an instant before she gave herself to that other, entirely and for
always!
He gazed into
the upturned face so near his own, for what seemed a long time, and when at
last he could control his voice, he laughed gratingly. Nellie, who was attuned
only to the sublimity of the coining day, almost hated him for his harsh mirth.
"
No," he cried hardly, " familiarity brings contempt no doubt, and
perhaps if you had to be up every morning when that bell rings and watch the
glow of dawning day streak the east simultaneously with the nigger putting
plow gear on his mule, you would find the greatest mystery, the greatest human
limitations, not in the inevitable dawn, but in the inevitable revolution of
eternal toil!" As Durieux spoke, he felt his voice grow stronger, and
assuming a half heroic tone to conceal the sarcasm in his soul, he made the
girl laugh in spite of herself. As tantalizing, teasing as ever, she saw in him
only the man she knew in her childhood, and, shrinking from what she believed
was his inability to understand her, she sought escape from his criticism in
ironical retreat.
"Oh, you
wicked thing!" she laughed, forcing her gayety. " How can you
disenchant me so! Here you are again, filling your favorite role of my
iconoclast." She simulated his tragic air with half childishness taking
the place of his acrimony.
"Don't
you know," she began, " — no you don't, because it's a secret, and
you musn't tell — but really, the only reason I ever wanted to be a man, apart
from when I was little, and wanted to be a boy so as to have plenty of pockets,
was, that if I were a man I could stay up all night long, and watch every phase
of its wonderful beauty."
" Well,
why don't you any way?" Durieux asked teasingly.
Nellie
laughed, embarrassed, and admitted " Because I'm afraid."
Durieux threw
his head back and laughed heartily, this time with the true ring of mirth in
his tones. "Is you skeered o' ghos'es? " he whispered mysteriously,
drawing himself together, and crouching into the farthest corner of his side of
the buggy, his eyes rolling in true negro fright.
"No,"
Nellie answered slowly and reflectively, "I am not afraid of ghos'es; I'm
afraid of that great mystery I was telling you of; and of the utter loneliness
— the feeling that I was the only thing alive. Really," she went on after
a moment's pause, " if I was a boy, I would jump on my horse, and dash
across the country, never missing a single moment of a beautiful moon-light
night."
"That
would be a good scheme," commented Durieux, nodding his head in mock
approval. " You know, then you would be up to see that the hands went to
the field on time without the trouble of getting up for the purpose. If you
were a boy you'd have another advantage too, you see. You'd have to work."
Nellie was
disgusted. " I am not going to talk to you any more," she pouted.
" You are determined to be prosy and ridicule everything I say!" She
drew herself as far from him as she could and looked at him severely.
Durieux began
whipping his horse and urging him forward. " Get-up Prince, let's put Miss
Nellie out of our buggy as soon as we can; she's naughty," he said without
looking at her again, and in a few moments they had drawn up at the gate, where
Mr. Barrett was helping Stella, limp with sleep, out of the surrey.
It was almost
daylight, and a few contrary chickens had already gotten over the fence and
were sauntering among the flower beds.
Durieux, with
pretense of great haste, helped Nellie out of his buggy, and leaving her at the
front steps with her mother, drove off, while the others went into the house.
As the sun in gilded red showed above the wood across the river, Nellie fell
into a deep dreamless sleep, and Durieux reached the house on Englehart, five
miles further on.
He passed by
the kitchen on his way to his room, and asked the old darkey to bring him
coffee there. When he reached his apartment, he slowly took off his evening
coat and laid it over the back of a chair, and untied his cravat; then he
tossed it away, and seating himself near the chair, drew a long, white kid
glove from an inner pocket of the coat, and gazed upon it. It was of no further
use to its owner now; she had dropped it in the bottom of the buggy where the
dew had fallen heavily, and there was a print of a slipper-toe on the long
wrist. Jules took his handkerchief and carefully wiped off all the dust except
that left by the waxed shoe; then folding it in the handkerchief, together
with the buttonhole bouquet she had pinned upon his coat, he laid the little
package in the bottom of his trunk, under everything else, and closed the lid
upon it.
He swallowed
his coffee, and exchanging the rest of his evening clothes for a sunburnt suit
that better accorded with his avocation, he went into the lot to watch the
darkies getting their cotton sacks and baskets ready for the day's work.
Arthur
Wheeler drove up, gave his horse and buggy over to the hostler and without
talking to anyone, went to his room in the store and tumbled like a log upon
his bed, where he slept the sleep of untroubled nature until noon.
CHAPTER XIII
It had been
intensely hot all day. The October sunshine poured down like a flood of molten
brass, until the parched earth turned away, and only slanting rays were left to
steal across its face. There had been a cool spell with a timid frost a few
days before, that made the present heat seem all the more unbearable. As the
first sunset breeze floated across the river, it fluttered the dusty ribbons on
the hat of a tired, panting woman, and swept across her moist face like blessed
balm.
"Ah,
that good!" the woman sighed. She put the two worn satchels she carried,
down upon the road side, and turned her face to catch the soft breeze in all
its refreshing gentleness.
She looked
about her with the glance of one who has been away and is glad to be back once
more and find everything just as it should be. It was all there, all that she
expected; the narrow, dusty road way with its wide, deep field of drying stalks
and snowy, drooping cotton on the one hand, and the ditch bank hidden by rank
vegetation, shoulder high, on the other. Even the bob-white calling in the wild
coffee over the levee, was just as it was every fall when she came. The golden-rod
and purple astors on the ditch bank stood stately and radiant, challenging the
cotton across the way to hold as high a head as they, nodded gorgeous plumes at
Omene as the evening zephyrs stirred their foliage, and the lower ageratum,
only half as tall, looked up and waved her pretty blue blossoms in welcome; her
statlier cousin inclined her fragrant white tufts, and gave up a portion of her
sweets for the returned wanderer's joy.
Omene Kirrch
loved it all, and breathed in the wild flowers' perfume with a sense of
gladness that she was with it now, once more. A gentle smile flitted over her
yellow face; she picked up her satchels and trudged on upon her way.
She presently
left the main road through Lilyditch, and taking a turnrow, soon came in sight
of the house she was seeking; the large cabin to the right, standing near the
bank of a little bayou that wound through the plantation and lost itself, few
people knew where. It was the narrow beginning of this stream that gave the
place its name. Before it left the woods, it turned and twisted there, serpent
like, in the shadow of the moss-hung trees, and all its length was filled with
thick-set spider lilies, spreading their fragrant, long-legged cups to catch
the sunshine as it filtered through the great branches overhead.
Yes, Omene
loved it all; the cotton-fields, the wild flowers, the waving grey moss, the
white spider lilies and everything that was a part of her adopted home. She
loved its very name; as softly flowing syllables reminded her of her native
tongue, and she loved Louisiana's sunny skies because nowhere else were they
so clearly blue.
In her roving
she had become familiar with the state's physiography from its most northern boundary,
on along the mighty river, to the salty sands of the gulf. She had trodden the
ground and wandered between the bayous and lakes that surrounded Durieux' old
home in the south, and the cotton fields of the north. From the black buckshot
soil of the alluvial east, she had wandered through the dark mud of the swamps,
where the undergrowth of the woodland, made up of matted vines and impenetrable
canebrakes, formed a jungle so dense that only the skillful hunter, in quest of
the remaining beast of prey lurking in its depths, dared penetrate. On past the
haunts of the deer and past the lakes whose sparkling waters, veiled over with
disc-leaved water lilies and their showy blossoms, reflected the blue of
summer skies, or later held up brown well filled challices ready above the icy
waters for the wild ducks that came with muttering wings to rest and feast in
seclusion upon their chilled placid bosoms. Put all these to the red clay hills
where the pine trees sway above ferns that lift broad feathery leaves beside
the thread-like streams watering their dark roots and the scanty tufts of grass
or scattered weeds that find nourishment in the sandy, pebble filled soil.
There was
hardly a nook in the scores of parishes that Omene had not visited during the long
years she plied her trade and sought the section most promising of financial
success. This section she believed she had found; the country that surrounded
Sigma and Asola was now what she called her headquarters and from the time the
first gin whistle's shrill notes split the autumn air until the last bale of
cotton was shipped, she worked at her business closely, going when the season
was done to the city, where companionship of her own class could be found, or
to the uplands where cold springs bubbled with health giving waters, but she
never left Louisiana.
This slightly
built wiry woman, with a skin as dark as a mulatto's yet with nothing else but
her coloring to suggest African blood, was almost forty years old. Her long
black hair, straight and glossy, was neatly kept; her lips were red, and her
straight thin nose was regular and well proportioned to her slender body.
She never
spoke of her past voluntarily, and when asked about it smiled frankly, as if
there was nothing to tell. She said she came from Syria and landed in New
Orleans twenty years ago. There her uncle met her and took her to his house
until she learned to speak the two important languages of the city. By that
time she had worked at various employments and had saved a little money of her
own; and then, yielding to the dictates of her roving nature and partly
persuaded by a friend, she invested her savings in a few cheap trimmings, some
needles and thread, and putting these into a satchel she started forth. Finding
the work congenial she had followed it ever since.
That she had
made money, the Syrian never acknowledged. She always wore plainest clothing,
and her old satchel with its worn corners and rusty sides did not proclaim
prosperity. She admitted that she had saved money and sent for her young
brother, and after he arrived provided him with a pack of goods. She sent the
young fellow to school during the summer, and in the busy season he shouldered
his pack and was her companion in her trips from cabin to cabin.
She meant to
open a house some day when Shibli was old enough to care for the business and
manage affairs, and Omene knew where she would get the money for the
enterprise. She would send for her children then too, perhaps, if they would
come, but they were both grown women, now, and might refuse to leave the
grandmother they knew for the mother who was a stranger. She would have Shibli
settle in a store, but as for herself she knew that no four walls could hold
her restless being for many months at a time.
It was
twilight when Omene Kirrch arrived at her destination, and the odors of good
homely fare arising from the cabin made her footsteps quicken. She was tired
and hungry, and the savory smell of frying meat was delicious. A pack of dogs
bounded from under the gallery as the peddler laid her hand upon the little
yard gate, and a loud barking was begun which quickly changed into yelps of
delight as the Syrian's sweet, musical voice called the old greeting they knew
so well. As she entered and walked toward the steps, the dogs frisked about
her, springing up almost to her shoulder in welcome, receiving her caresses in
a frenzy of glee.
The noise
made by the dogs awakened an old woman from a twilight nap in the darkness of
the house, and she came stumbling toward the door to inquire the cause of the
uproar there; she too changed from sentiments of suspicion to those of
pleasure.
One look was
enough to convince the old darkey who the new comer was. Stopping her broad
personage in the doorway, she placed her arms akimbo and with a generous smile
of welcome upon her countenance, she shouted: " Ella, come here! What you
reckon! If here ain't Miss Meny come back jest as natchul as ever!"
Ella left her
biscuit dough in a heap upon the board, and came running with floury fingers to
better hear what her grandmother was saying. She was even more overjoyed than
her grandmother at Miss Meny's return, and, taking the two satchels from her,
she followed her into the house, talking as she went.
"Here's
your room all ready for you, and ain't nobody slept in it since you was here.
Grandma jest made me sun the bed and things day 'fore yestiddy, cause she said:
`Ella, you get things ready, cause I boun' Miss Meny'll be back before the
week's out,' and sho 'nough, here you is."
All joined in
the laughter of mingled pleasure and embarrassment engendered by newness of
friends meeting again. The colored girl ran to the pump for fresh water for
her guest to drink and to bathe her warm, dusty face.
"Make
yourself comfortable now, Miss Meny," Ella said, bustling about and
bestowing all the little attentions in her power. She started back to her work,
saying gaily as she reached the door: `I'll run now and git supper, 'cause I
knows how Miss Meny is. Miss Meny always ready for her supper ain't you, Miss
Meny?' and with another burst o laughter, she hurried back to the kitchen.
As Ella
promised, she soon had the meal ready. She set a tiny table with the
accessories for one person, and after everything was placed upon it, clean and
appetizing, though coarse, the peddler took her place and fell to partaking of
the repast with an avidity that amply repaid the girl for the extra trouble she
had taken.
While Omene
was enjoying her supper, the old woman and the girl seated themselves near, and
old Harmony began to retail the news of the neighborhood with great zest. As
she recounted everything that had happened during the Syrian's absence, her
husband and sons came in, but they only entered the dining room out of
curiosity when they heard lively voices there, and after saying "
Howdy," they went out to the front gallery to wait for their supper until
the white woman had eaten hers.
The dining
room in old Aunt Harmony's cabin was like every other part of the house, as
clean as broom, scrubbing brush and dust cloth could make it, and in this
respect differed widely from the average negro's abode. There was nothing in
the minature apartment but the table, which could seat but two persons at a
time, a small safe, and three or four chairs. It was only used upon special
occasions or when boarders chanced along.
Every peddler
knew the house and knew that it had begun its existence as the usual double or
two-room cabin, and afterwards had been added to from all sides, until now it
contained eight rooms in all. They knew, too, that old Mingo Green and, his
family were eminently respectable colored citizens; the former being an elder
in the church and also a carpenter of some skill and experience. Everybody
liked Aunt Harmony well; there was a good deal of her to like, too. Her two
hundred pounds of solid brown covered flesh seemed filled with only the best
intentions toward every one. Charity and goodness of heart were her prevailing
traits, and no one, white or black, ever lay upon a sick bed within her neighborhood
without experiencing some kindly ministration of physic, nourishment or cheer
from her hands.
It was ten
years ago that Omene Kirrch first made Aunt Harmony's acquaintance. The
occasion was one evening when she chanced upon the cabin, hungry and exhausted
from a long tramp and asked to stay all night. From that time she was a regular
patron of the cabin whenever happening near it at nightfall; and then it came
to be that whenever she was not too tired to reach the house, she always went
there for her night's rest. It was she who suggested to Uncle Mingo that he
build more rooms to his house, and that they make a habit of entertaining white
travelers who came that way.
As a rule
there is nothing under the sun that a negro so abominates, so scorns, as "
po' white trash," or any white person who puts himself upon social
equality with their race, but somehow the Greens never looked upon " Miss
Meny " in that light. They knew that she was not " quality," of
course, but they always treated her with respect, and they liked her genuinely.
As Omene
began to talk more and eat less, showing that her healthy appetite was
appeased, her attention was suddenly arrested by the cry of a little child in
the adjoining room. She looked up quickly.
" Ah,
Ella," she inquired musically, " your baby? I had forgot you have one
baby! Let me see?"
The girl went
into the next room and brought her boy, just awakened from a late nap, and held
him out for inspection proudly. She had hastily washed his face and put a fresh
white slip upon him that made his bright little face gleam all the browner by
contrast. His short hair stood in close crisps, like spun jet, all over his
head. He was a fine little fellow, plump and lively, with great round eyes that
were a miracle of the whitest white and blackest black. He was just ten months
old, and being the child of one who was little more than a child, for Ella was
barely seventeen at his birth, he was as sunny tempered and playful as a happy
kitten.
Every clean
baby darkey, and every baby pig has a charm all his own. Both look so
thoroughly animal and lift such questioning flat-nosed little faces, that one
involuntarily wishes they might always be kept in their pristine state of
innocence. There is something so independent, too, about them both; so
sublimely indifferent to all earthly struggles and woes.
Miss Meny
held up her hands to the pretty child, and with a crow he sprang into her arms,
and was folded tightly to the hungry heart of the lonely peddler. If Omene had
a weakness, it was for children; she petted all who came within her reach, and
perhaps there was something in this happy child's dark laughing face and round
chubby limbs that reminded her of the babies she had once hugged close to her
bosom in the long ago. Omene never spoke of her husband except to say that he
was dead, but the little children she had borne and loved were often recalled
in her talk.
While the
three women were playing with the baby, and laughing at his cunning little
tricks, Ella heard a well-known sound. A whip-poor-will, rather uncommon
though it is, was sometimes heard calling from the trees near the cabin. The
girl lifted her head and listened without attracting attention, and again the
soft low call was heard. She arose and went quietly from the room, passing
around the back way, and was soon under a large cottonwood that stood a hundred
yards or so from the house on the bayou bank. As she drew near, a figure glided
out into the twilight and taking the girl in his arms, kissed her fondly.
"Oh Burrill,"
she cried, "I'm so glad you come!
You ain't
been to see me for most a week." Ella returned his caresses warmly, and
then questioned: "What made you whistle? Why didn't you come on to the
house?"
"Miss
Meny has done come back." " La, how did you know?" she asked in
surprise.
Burrill
laughed. " I seen her through the window; she was eatin her supper."
" Ain't
she lookin' well? Burrill, she took on mightily over the baby," the girl
added proudly. " She say he's the prettiest colored child she ever seen in
her life."
" She's
mighty right there, too," the man returned emphatically.
The two sat
down on the ground beneath the tree and talked for some time, then the girl
started up. "I must go," she said, "or grandma will think I
don't 'low to help her wash up the dishes tonight. Come on to the house. I
ain't had my supper yet and we can eat together."
" All
right," he said, catching her hand and gently pulling her back to her
place beside him. " I'll go, but don't hurry, darlin', I want to talk to
you some more out here first, it's so nice and cool out here. Honey," he
went on, after she was again seated, "I got to get you to attend to
somethin' for me. I got to send you — "
"Oh,
Burrill! " the girl cried reproachfully. " You promised you wouldn't
ever ask me to do that again!"
" Well,
but, pretty thing, I can't help it. I'm 'bliged to have you," he coaxed,
" Get one of the men."
"Dog
gone the men! They ain't any of 'em got sense enough to git out of the rain!
"
"Darlin',
why don't you stop this whole 'spisable business?" Ella asked coaxingly.
The man sat
in moody silence, twisting one thumb around the other, thoughtfully.
"Burrill,
I got to go. Grandma'll be callin' me." Again she started up, but Burrill
caught her dress and prevented her rising. He twined his arms about her and
drew her upon his knees. He kissed her tenderly, passionately, and called her
by every endearing name he could think of, until she laughed happily. He held
her close to him, and when she bad forgotten her distress of a few moments
before, he asked gently: " What time you goin' to start precious?"
The girl
raised her head from his shoulder where he had pressed it, and answered
sullenly: " I ain't goin'."
"
Well," said Burrill resignedly, after a pause. He raised Ella to her feet
as he got up himself. "Goodbye then, darlin', I got to go. I was goin' to
stay, but it I got to see one of the men, I got to get on back home
tonight." He kissed her lovingly and turned to go, but the girl threw her
arms around his neck and held him, pleading: "Don't go — don't go yet!
Just stay five minutes longer, Burrill, I ain't seen you for so long."
He returned
her kisses warmly, but persisted: "I got to go, sweetheart, don't you see
it's gettin' late? "
He put her from him, but as soon as he
released her she sprang back and clung to him as before. He pressed his
powerful arms about her in a slow quivering embrace, and kissed her dark face
on brow, cheek and neck, then again upon her lips, with all the strength of his
commanding nature. He felt her sink in his arms till her head lay in rest upon
his breast. She sighed restfully, and closed her eyes.
"
Burrill," she whispered, " if I do it this time, will you swear you
won't ever ask me again? "
He raised her
until she looked into his face.
"Ella, I
ain't goin' to make you no more promises. You know I ain't a goin' to make you
do nothin' against your will, bad as I needs you, but I'll just tell you; if
you'll go this time, I'll give you anything you want."
" No you
won't, Burrill."
"Yea I
will, darlin'. Ask for anything in this world you want and I'll give it to
you."
The girl
looked keenly into the dear face before her, almost hidden by the coming
darkness, and repeated sadly: " No you won't, Burrill."
" Now
how do you know, precious? " he queried lightly, affecting not to
understand her meaning. " Because it's done been asked"
Burrill heard
the quiver in her voice and knew that her lips were trembling. Again he pressed
her to him and kissed her, but she pushed him back gently.
"
Honey," he said solemnly, "I declare before God I'd marry you if I
could, but you know I'm married by law to Martha, and she'd raise the devil if
she knew how I love you."
"Well,
you ain't livin' with Martha."
I know I
ain't, but she wouldn't let me live in any peace with you. She'd have the law
on her side."
" Get a divorce," the girl said,
tersely.
" Well,
I might do that," he said reflectively. "But if I did, you know
Sallie would raise Cain. Besides, he went on, sinking his voice, "Martha
knows too much. What makes you keep botherin' yourself, Ella? You knows that I
loves you better than anything on earth, and gives you more than I ever gave
any other woman in my life."
"'Tain't
that I care so much. I'm satisfied when you come to see me as often as you can,
but grandpa keeps worryin' hisself and letting the elders talk him into
frettin' about it, till I don't have no peace."
"Don't you
let what they say worry you one bit, darlin'; you know I'd marry you in one
minute if it wasn't for Martha."
"I
suppose it ain't never occurred to you to send Martha out of the way," she
said bitterly. "One no 'count woman is worth twenty men, I reckon — "
"Hush,
Ella," Burrill said quickly, " Some one might hear you. Come now,
birdie, say what you want me to give you and you shall have it."
The girl was
silent. She stood pressing her toe into the soft earth of a cotton row near the
tree.
" Next
to you," she said at last, " I want a horse and buggy of my
own."
" Ah,
that's the way I like to hear you talk! Say what you want, and get it, too.
While you down in Vicksburg, you pick out the nicest horse and buggy you can
find, and pay for it on the spot. I'll give you the money in the mornin' before
you start."
The girl
squeezed his arm rapturously, and laughed contentedly. " I don't want no
Vicksburg horse, though," she said presently. " I want old Uncle
Jerry Smith's little bay mare. He's talkin' 'bout sellin' her. She's fine under
saddle, and harness, too."
"Go over
there then and get her now, so you can have her to ride in the mornin', and you
can pick out your buggy and come back in it."
"
That'll be just splendid! Wonder if Unc' Jerry's gone to bed yet? "
" No, I
reckon not; it ain't late for him. What do Unc' Jerry want for her? "
" He say
he'll take fifty dollars for her, cash."
Coleman
stepped near enough to the tree to make it and his body appear as one in the
faint lingering light, and taking off a belt he wore beneath his clothing, his
sharp memory and sense of touch enabled him to count out the necessary amount
of bill accurately, and these he handed in a roll to the girl.
"
Thanky, sir, more'n a thousand times!" Ella said gratefully, putting the
money away in her bosom. The two started then hand in hand in the direction of
Jerry Smith's cabin, standing on a turnrow five minutes walk further front in
the field.
"Ella,"
said Coleman as they walked along, "if I was you I wouldn't buy a right
new buggy, you know, because people might think it funny how you could get a
horse and buggy too, all of a sudden."
" That's
so," she acquiesed.
"Of
course, I've made a good crop, and anybody'd know I was able to give 'em to you
but — "
"Um — hoo,
yes, I know; it's better to be on the safe side."
When they
drew near enough to the cabin to hear the family on the gallery talking,
Burrill dodged behind a little log cotton house, and Ella went on alone.
Her trade was
quickly concluded, and old Jerry went with her to where the animal was secured
by a rope tied to a stob driven into the ditch bank, and untying the knots, he
handed the rope to her.
"You
want to borry a saddle so you can ride her home, honey? "
"No, nem
mind. I'll just ride her bareback that little way. I'd like to get a halter,
though, if you can spare one."
" Son," said the old darkey to a boy
who had followed them, with regret, to where the pet was tied; for he hated to
see her sold, "Son, git Ella that bridle hangin on de side de
chimney."
As they
waited for the boy to return, Ella unnecessarily lied glibly: "I come for
Betty tonight, so I could ride her up the river tomorrow to see my cousin. I
won't be back till tomorrow night," she added, "but I'll ask grandpa
to fetch the bridle back in the mornin'."
" That's
all right, honey. I ain't afeerd o' not gettin' it back. Good night; I wish you
a pleasant trip tomorrow."
Ella Green
mounted her purchase with the activity of a cat, and started off briskly. She
passed the cotton-house without turning her head, but as soon as she was far
enough from the cabin for the tall cotton and the darkness to conceal her, she
slipped down and waited for Coleman to come up with her, then together they
walked on to Elder Green's house.
CHAPTER XIV
Omene Kirrch
was returned to what she called home, ready with closely packed satchels to
resume her work. She was a week or two later than usual, on account of having
been detained in New Orleans with Shibli, who was very ill; but she was come at
last, and Shibli Saleem, the brother, would come, too, as soon as he was strong
enough to bear his share of the burden. There was many a dime, now, to be
picked up from cabin to cabin; for every darkey that was physically able, from
the oldest to the little chaps who stood on tiptoe to reach the topmost bolls,
was between the cotton rows from the drying of the dew to the setting of the
sun, picking the beautiful fleece, with never a thought to its wondrous
whiteness, nor its illimitable possibilities; snatching it from its stems and
stuffing it into bags, that perhaps were once purely white in these same
fields, with never a care, never an object, but to gather so many pounds per
day and receive so much hard cash per hundred in emolument therefor.
The season was
at its height, and Lilyditch gin was the scene of bustle and activity. The
iron-covered engine-house, with its furnace glowing like a jewel, was sending
its vitality through the pulsing belts and humming brushes; and up in the lint
room the snowflake fibre was issuing, fold upon fold, in thick widths, to be
clutched up by black arms and thrown into the yawning press, whose jaws crushed
together over the downy cud, and finally tossed it out again, a hard,
iron-bound block, for other black arms to snatch aside and send tumbling down
the incline upon the ground below. Amid all this buzz of machinery and human
industry, there was the air of leisure that is a part of the negro's social
economy. Every man not caught red-handed in the act of labor, would have been
supposed to be an individual with neither cause nor inclination for toil. He
lounges around aimlessly, joking with his fellows, or whittling a stick; and if
not seated or lying down, invariably leaning his loosely-adjusted anatomy
against a wall, a post, or anything else that will afford him physical support
and take the responsibility of sustaining his mortal part aside from his own
exertions.
Mr. Barrett
was seated upon his horse in the cotton yard, talking to the manager of
Lilyditch who stood, brush and pot in hand, marking bales of cotton, and
between strokes of his brush directing the hauling of it over to the landing.
From September to March there were few days of Mr. Barrett's life that were not
fully occupied from sunrise to night. He took the marks of the cotton now,
counted the bales, took the samples that Mr. McStea had put aside for him, and
hurried away to Englehart, where the same duties awaited him, and must be
accomplished before dark.
Indian summer
prevailed in all its dreamy beauty. Its sun gleamed round, and rosily through
the smoky ether, and the wood was hiding behind this hazy autumnal veil, that
it might flash forth in its new garb of crimson and gold, a dazzling surprise,
when the first winter sun dispelled the mists of the Indian's traditional pipe
of peace.
Mr. Barrett
rode along the little bayou, and had almost reached the strip of wooded swamp
that separated Lilyditch from Englehart, when he suddenly came upon a
well-known figure, that had crossed the dried bayou and emerged through the
willow saplings just in front of him. A gun was upon the man's shoulder, and
trotting at his heels was another familiar figure — the personage of a lanky,
underfed hound.
Mr. Barrett
reined up his horse as soon as the huntsman crossed his path, and stared first
at the negro and then at his faithful follower, the yellow dog. Everything
about the former proclaimed contented carelessness, from the shapeless old hat
upon his head — sunburned beyond recognition of its former hue — on down the
faded, ragged, patched clothing, to the rough shoes, that had never been
blacked since the time they left the manufacturer's hands to the present day,
when they clung to their wearer's feet, burst in almost every seam, and showing
by bulges here and toe-shapes there that they had adapted themselves to the
idiosyncracies of what they inclosed.
The longer
Mr. Barrett sat and looked at the negro, the higher his usually placid temper
rose, until his face flushed and the veins on his forehead stood out heavily.
The darkey
touched his hat politely. Smothering an imprecation beneath his breath, Mr.
Barrett said with his usual urbanity.
" Ah,
Nathan, going hunting, I see."
"Yes
'r," the man returned cheerily. "I thought us 'd enjoy a squ'r'l, or
a 'possum, maybe, for our supper."
"Yes?
How's your crop panning out? Have you finished picking cotton?"
Nathan
shifted his weight from one foot to the other, and answered, contentedly:
" Well, sir, my crap's putty fair, but I ain't finished pickin' yet. Ain't
got more 'n three or four acres to pick out though."
The curb that
Mr. Barrett had put upon his temper snapped like lightning, and he flashed out
furiously: "You confounded black
rascal! Do you tell me that you have something like three bales of cotton in
the fields yet, and you out here piking around after an abominable little
squirrel?"
Nathan again
shifted his weight, and scratched his head in perplexity. " Boss," he
began, slowly, "didn't' us settle up our 'count at our las' ginnin’?
"Yes!"
"
Boss," he again questioned meekly, casting his eyes up sideways at Mr.
Barrett. "Boss, us — er — Boss, I don't owe you nothin', do I? Didn't my
las' ginnin' pay all my Ian' rent an' — a — all the grub I got too?"
Mr. Barrett
looked down into the darkey's humble countenance. The corners of his mouth
twitched, and with difficulty he suppressed his laughter as the philosophy of
the negro's point of argument flashed upon him. Bull, who had pricked up his
ears and looked from Mr. Barrett to his master; and back again, when the first
angry words left the former's lips, had satisfied himself that there was no
quarrel on hand, and after yawning twice, settled himself for a nap.
Nathan still looked
into his master's face for an answer. Mr. Barrett allowed himself to smile,
and said: “No, sir; you do not owe me a cent. And I suppose if it suits you to
let your cotton hang in the field until the rains beat it out upon the ground,
I have no right to complain. It simply leaves your pocket and fertilizes my
land." He waved his hand toward the woods. "Go ahead; if it isn't
squirrel or 'coon today, it will be whisky later on. Your wife and children
will at least share your supper." He laughed, and added "Good-by,
Nathan. I wish you luck."
The
happy-natured negro grinned broadly. So long, Boss. Much obleeged to you."
Nathan looked
after Mr. Barrett, with a puzzled expression clouding his countenance, until
he was out of sight. He aroused his dog, by and by, with a merry, whistle, and
the two plunged into the woods.
Mr. Barrett
rode on his way, muttering below his breath: " Blessed race — living
literally after one, at least, of Christ's holy ordinances." He shook his
reins and murmured: " ` Lay not up for yourselves treasures upon earth,
where moth and rust doth corrupt, and thieves break in and steal.' "
Mr. Barrett
was detained at Englehart until late and it was almost midnight when he again
entered Sigma; and as he did so, he was nearly run into by some excited negroes
who were rushing toward the end of the village he had just passed through.
When Sigma was put upon rollers and dragged piecemeal
from the caving bank of the encroaching river, some fifteen years ago, it was
located in an old field, and, as it happened, near the gin house; and this
building, after the lands about it were divided into town lots, gradually fell
into disuse. The boiler and gin-stand were taken away and sold, and the old
weather-beaten building stands there still, used as a hay-loft sometimes, and
as a resort for the negroes' favorite sport — the illicit game of craps. Time
and again the District Attorney secured the participants of an unusually
audible game, and those who did not have the requisite ten dollars to appease
the parish's laws, had the privilege of boarding at the parish's expense for
thirty days. Yet with the jail doors always yawning between the negro and the
crap table, the latter had its coterie of professional votaries and its group
of sometime players, with no abatement of members. The old disused gin-house
was an admirable nook for such secret conclaves, and became a regular resort
for nightly meetings.
It was
Saturday night, and one after another the men began dropping in at " Aunt
Ginnie's," as they facetiously called the den. The few candles upon the
table threw a ghostly gloom about the dark walls of the big room. The table,
the size of an ordinary dinner table, was constructed of boards from packing
boxes, and had a slender strip nailed around the edge to keep the dice from
falling off. Over this was spread an old blanket, and the candles were stuck
upon it by means of their own melted grease.
The wind
whistled through the cracks in the wall and made the candle flames leap and
flutter, and giant shadows of the men danced upon the sombre walls, like
distorted demons over a newly descended soul. Ever now and then a boisterous
" Hyah, hyah, hyah!" of laughter rang through the old building, and
between each shout the thrower's voice was heard. "Gim me room here,
gentl'men," he probably says first, and then picking up the dice, he steps
back, with one foot planted before the other, and bending eagerly forward, he
swings his whole arm, and with a lurch of his loosely jointed shoulders, he
rolls the dice from his hand, calling: "Comin' to git you! "
The dice fall
with ten up, and he picks them up with a flourish.
"
Gentl'men, make dat ten for a quarter! Shoot 'em agin! Let 'er roll! Come ten!
Got you faded! Seven or ‘leven! Craps! ! "
" Hyah,
hyah, hyah!" There were all ages and sizes of men standing around playing,
watching the play, betting, swearing, and using profane words with the
lavishness that only a negro can enjoy, unprovoked by other than strong
emotion.
When the
sport was at its height Allen Whitney sauntered in, and stood looking over a
friend's shoulder. He stood for some time, with his hands in his pockets,
looking on, but he declined to play, or to bet on those who were doing so.
Every one
present seemed to have money. They had all been picking cotton, or ginning, and
had been paid off that evening after sundown, for their week's work.
The stakes
were large and the game intensely exciting, and Allen's attention was fixed
upon a big burly negro, a stranger to him, who seemed to be playing with
unusual luck. He had been winning at a rate of three times to five, but it had
come to the point where he won at almost every throw. This man, two other
strangers, and Burrill Coleman were doing the principal betting, though others
joined, now and then, when the stakes were not too high. Allen was standing
between Coleman and the lucky negro, who seemed to be named " Buck;"
and he could see that Burrill was steadily losing his temper as his money
changed hands.
He threw another
twenty-dollar gold piece upon the table, and with an oath more violent than any
he had uttered yet, he exclaimed: " Win that too, you — "
"Just as
you say, Mr. Coleman," the other negro returned, blandly, showing his
teeth in a sardonic smile.
"Give me
room, gentl'men. Let her roll! Jim Hicks! Comin' to git you! Make that six
agin, Mr. Coleman! Come six! Ah! "
Allen,
watching the throws with every faculty strained to that end, saw the six come,
as the man had announced, with never a crap intervening. He turned to Coleman,
yelling in excitement: "Good God, Burrill, that nigger's ringin' in hosses
on you!"
"
“What!"
Coleman sprang at his adversary with uplifted fist, but the negro was too quick
for him. He evaded Burrill's descending blow, and before any one, least of all
his victim, could divine his intention, he snatched a razor from his bosom, and
springing upon Allen, cut his throat so horribly that the poor boy sank upon
the ground unconscious, covered with his own warm blood.
Coleman was
so staggered by the turn affairs had taken that he could scarcely believe his
senses. Allen's friends disarmed the strange negro and bound him with a rope
some one secured while the others were wresting the razor froth his grasp.
Coleman went
up to him and glared furiously into the equally infuriated face of the
murderer.
" You —
— fool! Ain't there no sense in your blasted head? What good are you now?
"
"
Ah," cried one of his captors, " Mr. Coleman, he's all the good. If
Allen Whitney dies — and God only knows what's to keep him from it — this
devil-nigger will find hisself between daylight and a piece of hemp, sho as I
live to talk before a jury."
"Yes,
Lawd! " came in chorus from the crowd.
Coleman
looked about him. Only Allen Whitney's friend and the captive remained. The
other two strangers had gone, and he, too, passed out of the house. Just
outside the door he met old Dr. Smith coming hurriedly, and behind him was
Allen's mother, and several women who came running, partly from curiosity,
partly from interest in the injured boy.
The women ran
shrieking into the gin, and the doctor stopped.
"Is he
still alive?"
" Yes
sir," Coleman answered. " He's breathing yet. Doctor, for God's sake,
keep him alive! If Allen was to die," he added more calmly, " I'd blame
myself all the rest of my life. I'm goin' for Dr. Allison, now, to help you.
Stay with him, Doctor, as long as he's breathin', and I'll pay you for every
minute of your time."
Burrill hardly
waited for the good old man's promise; but rushed on and reaching his horse,
galloped to Englehart, and on through that place to Lawren's Station, covering
the distance of fourteen miles in an incredibly short time.
Allen did not
die. His assailant was taken to jail in Asola, and as soon as Dr. Smith and Dr.
Allison — whose united efforts saved his life — pronounced Allen out of danger,
the negro's release was secured. But it was many a day, and only after careful
nursing, that Allen returned to his work in the Barrett household.
When one man
lies at the point of death, however anxiously his small world hangs upon the
faintest changes in his condition, the other worlds that revolve around his,
speed on, unchecked, in their appointed courses without knowledge or thought of
the suspense in one isolated star.
While Allen
was lying day after day in a seemingly hopeless condition, attended almost
hourly by two of the best of physicians, and having delicacies sent to him from
the Barrett kitchen to nourish his rapidly wasting body into strength to do
battle with the hideous wound constantly menacing his life, the handful of
humanity immediately surrounding his sphere was all that remembered the
gin-house casualty or gave it more than a passing thought. From the beginning
of the cotton season until its end there is a steady flow of business interests
that absorbs events and defies personal interruption or individual
suffering. When King Cotton and his high
minister, Prince Seed, reign, all social crises save birth and death are forced
to wait.
Business
resulting from an unusually good crop was occupying every one, and old Mr.
Chaflin of Willowburn was pretty tired when Saturday night came; and glad
enough when it seemed that at last the negroes had quit straggling in, and be
could close the store and betake his tired body to bed. It was no light work to
stand behind the counter of a plantation store all day long, and cater to the
whims of negroes, many of whom were half drunk; besides the task of watching
all parts of the room at once to see that no stealing was done, and through all
this, to keep down difficulties between customers
that threatened to bring razors or pistols into use.
Mr. Chaflin
was long past his youth, and though still active and in excellent health, he
was Initially usually too fatigued when night came to care for much but
dreamless, refreshing sleep. He had been at Willowburn two years and liked his
work, but found the place oppressively lonely at times. He longed for his wife
and children to cheer him in his struggle for their support. He was a good man;
gentle, kind and indulgent. Far too indulgent, some of his friends thought when
they contemplated his wife's life of ease in the city, and thought of the
lonely husband and father toiling in the plantation store, remote from all
white associates.
As Mr.
Chaflin decided that his day's work was done, and was barring the windows and
door, he heard footsteps sound upon the gallery and a tap upon the front door.
" Wait a
minute, Mister," a negro's voice called out-side, " wait a
minute." Mr. Chaflin opened the door again and a negro walked up to the
part of the counter that served as a bar, and threw a dollar down upon it. Mr.
Chaflin gave the man the whiskey he asked for, and while he was drinking this,
two others lounged in and joined the first who invited them to drink with him.
All three
were strangers to Mr. Chaflin; the first man who entered had come into the
store during the afternoon and purchased a can of salmon and crackers, which he
ate leisurely near the stove; but the other two had never been there before
that he knew of.
It was very
cold and a slow drizzling rain had been falling since dusk that seemed to
pierce one to the very marrow with its icy breath. Mr. Chaflin washed the
glasses the darkies used and put them back in their places upon the shelf, and
was not surprised as he did so that the men went up to the stove and stood
warming themselves by its comforting heat. He finished putting away the
bottles of liquor and went to the stove too, where he held out his thin
blue-veined hands to be warmed. The three negroes were looking about the store
in idle curiosity as they stood in silence, and the old gentleman said kindly:
"You fellows don't live around here, do you?"
" No
sir," the man who came in first replied. " We's just over here on a
little business!'"
The men still
lingered near the heater, turning first one way and then another until the
steam, accompanied by the invariable ill odor, arose from their damp clothing.
The store on
Willowburn was a very small affair, scarcely more than twenty by forty feet,
and in the back was a small compartment cut off for the store-keeper's use as a
bedroom ; yet small as it was, there was a good business done there, and often
there was as much as a hundred or two hundred dollars taken in on a brisk
Saturday. There was no other store within five miles of it and the darkies on
two or three adjoining plantations congregated there at the close of each week
to spend their cash and carouse with their friends.
Mr. Chaflin,
as he stood giving the darkies a chance to warm themselves thoroughly before he
turned them out into the cold, fell into a light reverie from which he was
recalled violently by finding himself surrounded by three unknown men, each
with a cocked revolver within two feet of his head. He was so astonished that
he stared before him dazed, realizing slowly, the fact that he was utterly
helpless. He dropped his hands at his sides and looked at the three villains
surrounding him calmly, though his heart was beating deafeningly and the blood
rushed to his brain so fast that thinking seemed an impossibility.
Like a flash,
recollection of the atrocious murders that had filled the papers of his native state
for the past few weeks recurred to his mind, and he recognized that he was in
the identical position that the men in the counties across the river were when
they lost their lives. He wondered if he were dreaming. He had read the
accounts of robbery and murder, as they appeared in the daily papers, with such
horror, that he believed be must be dreaming that he was one of the men who had
been killed.
The man who
came first, and whom the other two called " Buck," laughed.
"You see
ole man," he said, "we's got de drop on you. Hit ain't no use fur you
to kick. Dick, go lock dat do'.
"Hyah,
hyah, Buck, you must take me fur a baby. I done dat when I fuss come in."
"What do
you purpose doing?" asked Mr. Chaflin slowly.
"Just
keep your mouth shet; you'll soon fine out. Here boys," Buck went on,
"'tain't no use a all o us pintin our pistol at him; you all keep him
quiet while I gits de money. He ain't got no pistol on 'caze hits 'hind de
counter by the cash draw an' I borried his knife dis evenin'. Bud, if you wants
to, you kin pick out a overcoat you said you wanted. Dick kin keep de ole man's
mouth shet."
"I wants
a pair pants," muttered Dick.
" No you
don't," asserted Buck. " You don't want no bundles in your way."
Saying this he turned toward the cash drawer and secured what money was in it.
Putting it into his pocket he came back to Mr. Chaflin.
You must a
slipped some of it into de safe today whilst I wasn't a lookin'. Come, get it
out quick; we got to hurry!”
“I refuse to
open the safe," said Mr. Chaflin's firmly. Buck stared at him in amazement
and then broke out into an uproarious laugh.
" Well
I'll be doggoned! Come here, Bud; he say he ain't a goin' to open de safe!
"
" Why
Mister," said Dick in remonstrance, "you can't he’p yourself."
Three pistols were again leveled at the poor old man's head.
His wife, his
children, his grandchildren! But for one chance to see them all once more!
Silently he took the key of the little safe from his pocket and held it out.
Buck took it and went to the back of the room where the safe stood, removed the
money it contained and returned to his companions, leaving the iron door
swinging open.
" Come
ahead, boys," he said, " we got to be goin'."
"Let him
git his hat, Buck, 'taint no use carrying' him out in de col' like that,"
said Bud, speaking for the first time.
"Go git
it then," said Buck. "Hit's hanging' up in his room nigh de
do'."
Bud went into
the little room where Mr. Chaflin’s bed stood, and took the hat down from its
peg. Noticing that an overcoat hung beside it, he hastily snatched it down also
and went back to the store. Without a word he put the hat upon Mr. Chaflin's
head and held the coat ready for him. Mr. Chaflin adjusted his hat and thrust
his arms into the sleeves of his coat, the man assisting him with a deftness
that showed him accustomed to the service. When the coat was on, Mr. Chaflin
turned to him and said with his gentle simplicity: " Thank you."
" You
welcome, sir," muttered Bud, buttoning to his chin the new overcoat he had
selected from the stock on the shelves.
Buck moved
toward the door.
" Will
you kindly tell me where you intend taking me?" Mr. Chaflin asked when
they had reached the gallery and Buck closed the door.
" We
just goin' to take you up de road a little piece and leave you."
" Why do
you not leave me here; my friends will at least find me, then? "
" That's
just 'zactly what's de matter. We don't keer 'bout you bein' found till we's
outter de way."
The men started
forth in the cold rain, stumbling through the mud, and keeping their prisoner
well guarded in their midst. It was not very dark, and as the party became
accustomed to the change from lamp light to the moon's dimmed rays, objects
could be discerned distinctly enough to guide them on their way. They trudged
along the lonely road silently for nearly half a mile, when suddenly Buck
paused drawing the rest with himself into the shadow of the trees
"Who is
dat ahead of us? " he whispered. " Hush, be still! "
The person
approaching drew near nearer, and for the first time Mr. Chaflin's heart gave a
bound of hope. In the faint light he recognized the man approaching as one of
the tenants on Willowburn; a strong, active young fellow, who prided himself
upon his prowess as a wrestler and boxer. As Mr. Chaflin recognized him, each
of his captors uplifted his pistol, and one of them was leveled at himself
while the other two were aimed at the new corner.
" Halt!
" commanded Buck.'
"Hello,
what's the matter here? Good Lawd, Mr. Chaflin, is that you?"
" Yes,
Rich, I am in the hands of these robbers, as you see.”
" My
Lawd! Why — "
" Here,
cheese your racket," commanded Buck. " Fall into line ef you don't
want your brains blowed out."
" Better
tie them fellows together," suggested Dick. " I got de rope
here." The negro produced a strong slender cotton rope and first tied the
mulatto's hands behind him, then Mr. Chaflin's, linking the two together. The
men moved on, slowly, through the deep mud. Several cabins with no lights, or
sign of wakeful life visible were passed, but each time that one came in sight
the revolvers were placed at the captives' heads. Another half mile was gone
over in this way. The rain ceased to fall and the clouds slowly drifted apart,
making the way lighter and less difficult.
Mr. Chaflin's
brain had cleared and he was determined to make a struggle for his life, yet he
saw no way to extricate himself and his fellow sufferer from the dangerous
position. He managed to stumble and fall up against Rich, with his mouth close
to the darkey's ear.
" Keep
up your courage. I see someone coming," he whispered.
He was right.
Another man was coming toward them and he too; like Richard, was halted as soon
as he was within reach of the pistols. It was a negro well known to both Mr.
Chaflin and the darkey, and he in turn was astonished and alarmed by the crowd
before him. Again Mr. Chaflin stumbled.
" Now's
our chance, watch!" " All right, I'm loose."
Rich was
loose. He had ingeniously held his hands, while they were being tied, in such a
way that it was an easy matter to undo Dick's bungling knots, and he had also
managed to get his knife from his hip pocket and open its three-inch blade. He
still held the rope in his hands so that he was seemingly as helpless as when
first bound.
The new
addition to the party was a strong, able-bodied negro, too; but he was
frightened out of his wits, and he failed to see the advantage his presence
might be to the two men, who seemed to be completely cowed. Buck spoke less
boldly when he ordered the third prisoner to take his place beside the others,
and Rich was quick to detect the change. He, too, had had time for reflection,
and he knew that life was too dear to he given up without a struggle. The new
man was pushed into place beside the mulatto, and the three ruffians took up
stations behind, with pistols cocked, ready for use, in their cold, stiffened
hands.
Buck held a
brief consultation with his partners and following their mumbled replies, he commanded
the party to turn from the road, to the right, and follow the cotton rows
leading toward the woods.
The frost and
rain loosened soil of the field was almost impassible. The men sank in the mud
above their ankles at every step. Rich stumbled against the friend at his side,
whom the others had not dared to tie, and muttered: " Get ready to fight!
"
With these
words, he wheeled about, plunged his knife into Dick, the villain nearest him,
striking him backward into the mud.
Mr. Chaflin
had by this time succeeded in extricating his hands from the rope, and being
on the alert, he grabbed Dick's pistol as he fell, and tried to empty its
contents into the leader's head, but Buck was too quick for him. He was taken
aback by Rich and Mr. Chaflin’s rapid action at first, and thereby lost his
chance of overpowering them.
Dick lay in
the mud, wounded in his side, and Bud, firing his pistol wildly, turned and ran
toward the wood, leaving Buck nothing else to do but follow his example; and
this he did, darting back to the road, with Mr. Chaflin pursuing him as best he
could; but Buck's younger limbs did his bidding, and diving into the thicket of
willows along the edge of the bayou, he was soon lost, and Mr. Chaflin was
compelled to give up the pursuit. The old man turned unwillingly and retraced
his steps to where he had left his companions, and there, to his chagrin, he
found that Dick, too, had been allowed to escape.
Rich stood
excitedly talking over the part he had taken in the encounter from the time he met
Mr. Chaflin and his would-be assassins, and the other negro was still so
frightened that he scarcely knew what he was doing.
When Mr.
Chaflin rejoined them, baffled and distressed at not recovering the money,
yet, withal, thankful that his life was spared, there was nothing to be gained
by lingering in the cold.
"Come,
boys," he said, I am terribly shaken up. Come on to the store, where we
can get warm and dry once more."
CHAPTER XVI
For several
weeks prior to the robbery of Mr. Chaflin the newspapers had reported instances
of robbery and murder committed in the counties across the river, which the
Louisianians read with interest and regret; but it was not until a robbery and
like murder was attempted in their own midst that public sentiment was aroused
to the fullest. Mississippi seemed infested by a gang of well-organized
ruffians, whose deeds were so carefully executed that no trace of the
perpetrators could be followed up. In each instance the crime was committed in
an isolated store, but never in the same locality twice, and always the man or
men who slept in the stores that were robbed were found dead upon the floor
next morning by the first customer who chanced that way. This thing went on,
causing more distress and alarm as the weeks merged into months, until it
culminated in the murder of a gentleman so highly esteemed and so well
connected by blood and business interests with the best in the country, that
the state authorities fully awakened to the exigency of some decided step, and
every effort was put forward toward catching the gang, or at least its leaders.
It was
generally supposed that the atrocious crimes were committed by negroes, as
strange darkies were always seen in the vicinity during the day that preceded
the crime, but the men who might have identified the murderers were always left
dead or in a speechless, dying condition.
Following the
excitement caused by the murder of Mr. Beresford, several arrests of suspicious
characters were made, and one of these, turning state's evidence, gave the
names of two or three other negroes whom he swore were the organizers and
leaders of the murderous band of robbers.
This
confession was made only a few days after Mr. Chaflin's narrow escape with his
life, and the news of it reached Sigma when the robbery at Willowburn was
creating no small amount of interest.
Jules Durieux
and Arthur Wheeler, having ridden into Sigma together, where the matter was
being thoroughly discussed, were dumbfounded upon their return to Englehart to
find that during their absence Mississippi officers had arrived at the
plantation, by way of Asola, and arrested Burrill Coleman on the charge of
implication in the murder of Mr. Beresford.
Wheeler's
indignation was unbounded, and he expressed himself in language rather more
forceful than elegant.
" The
idea of such a thing!" he said, thoroughly stirred, and not caring who
heard him. "Burrill Coleman leader of a gang of Mississippi toughs! Why, I
never heard of such a thing in all my life. Humph! next thing, Jules, I suppose,
they'll come and arrest you as leader of the Mafia."
Durieux sat
before the stove thoughtfully, punching into the coals with the poker. "
There is simply a mistake, Arthur, that is all," he said.
The store
porter, who had informed the gentlemen of the arrest, still stood there,
waiting another chance to speak. " Mr. Wheeler," he said at his first
opportunity, "Burrill got 'em to bring him by here, when they was
startin', and he axed me to tell you an' Mr. Juror for God's sake to get him
out o' this. He 'lowed you all knowed more about him than anybody else an'
could do him a powerful sight o' good ef you'll testify for him."
"Testify?
I should say I shall!" Wheeler asserted. " Why, I'll go to Vicksburg
myself and prove that Burrill Coleman is an innocent man."
" You
may go, now, Louis," said Durieux, quietly dismissing the porter. As soon
as the darkey left the office and closed the door behind him, Durieux spoke
again: "This is a bad piece of business for Burrill," he said.
"I am afraid there must be something wrong somewhere, or his name would
not be implicated in this thing. Of course I believe he is all right,
myself."
" I
should say so! We know Burrill, and a better nigger never lived." Wheeler tilted
his chair back and slapped his knee to give emphasis to his words. " Why,
I would trust Burrill Coleman a sight further than I would many a white man I
know who passes for a gentleman."
"Yes, we
know Burrill, and think a mighty heap of him," Jules admitted, his dark
eyes still gazing into the fire. "Our praises, though, I fear, won't go
for much with the Mississippi officials," he added, twisting his mustache
and biting off the ends thoughtfully.
" I
don't purpose relying upon our praises nor my confidence in him to effect
Burrill Coleman's release," Wheeler declared warmly. " Why, man, I've
got proofs!" He jumped up from his chair. " Come here; I'll show you
what can clear Burrill Coleman of all suspicion."
Jules
followed Wheeler over to his desk, and both stood, while the latter pulled down
his ticket ledger and rapidly turned the pages. "There," he said
triumphantly, pausing on a page, and running his finger down the column of
dates. " There it is: Burrill Coleman, Nov. 25th, worked till 12 o'clock.
Pretty good evidence in his favor, isn't it? Mr. Beresford was murdered on
November 25th, at or near 10 o'clock, and Burrill Coleman is arrested as being
one of his murderers. Now if any one can prove to me that a man can work at a
gin till 12 o'clock here, and then get to Leona, ninety miles distant, across
a river, and without steamboat or railway to assist him, in time to commit a
murder at 10 o'clock, then I'll freely confess I don't know anything about
human possibilities. And, more than that," went on Wheeler, rapidly,
"I can swear that I talked with Burrill about six o'clock that same
Saturday. He had bought a pair of shoes for his wife — "
"Burrill
claims that he hasn't any wife just at present," Durieux interrupted,
smilingly.
" Well,
he bought a pair of women's shoes, the best pair in the house, No. 4, anyway,
and he brought them back to exchange for a pair of 3½. I noticed it
particularly, as I didn't know there was a woman on the place with that small a
foot."
" Well,
I am certainly glad that you have this," said Durieux, tapping the book
with a cigar he had taken out to light. " It worried me no little to have
Burrill taken off the place this way. I have always liked him as a man and as a
laborer. He has the knack of getting more work out of another darkey, too, than
any man I ever saw, black or white. You know, a nigger just naturally hates to
be bossed by another nigger, but Burrill can take a squad of hands and make
things hum." Durieux laughed, and puffed at his cigar. "It's an
actual fact — sometimes when I've wanted an extra amount of work done by a
certain time, I've put Burrill to oversee the job, and gone on off, knowing he
would get it done, if I couldn't."
"They
all like Burrill, and seem to have a high regard for him," Wheeler said.
"
Yes," drawled Durieux, " but do you know, I think there is a certain
— a — well, fear, I suppose I must call, it, mixed with their esteem? "
"Oh, I
don't know," said Wheeler, who, now that Coleman was in trouble, was
unwilling to review his shortcomings. " Burrill is right rough and
dictatorial to men of his own color — that's just his way — but he is always as
respectful and accommodating to white people as any body could desire."
The day for
Coleman's trial came, and, busy as he was, and ill as he could be spared from
his place behind the counter, Arthur Wheeler arose at three o'clock, while the
world was still wrapped in the icy darkness of a coming winter's day, and
putting his books in the buggy, drove over twenty-five miles of almost bottomless
roads to testify where Burrill Coleman was on November 25th. He furthermore
swore that the negro had worked on Englehart steadily throughout the year, with
the exception of a day or two off, and then, when he was laid up with
toothache.
When Wheeler
recrossed the river by ferry boat, and got into his buggy to return home in the
afternoon, Burrill Coleman shared the seat in the buggy with him, and a more
grateful being it had never been Arthur Wheeler's pleasure to see. The darkey
seemed as though he could not do enough to show his thanks.
Wheeler was
almost frozen after his long drive, and Dureiux, expecting that he would be
thoroughly so, sat up in the office of the store to wait for him, with elaborate
preparations in the way of hot supper, a warm room, and fresh clothes, all in
order; and this, together with Burrill's humble and repeated expressions of
thanks, made him sink to sleep, when he finally did get to bed, with some sort
of vague idea that perhaps all the heroes, even if but on a small scale, were
not dead yet.
From the time
that apprehension was felt in Louisiana of robbery and murder in plantation
stores, Durieux and Wheeler used the utmost precaution toward protecting
themselves and their employer's property. Durieux changed his sleeping
apartment from the plantation residence to the store and, without desiring it
generally known, shared Wheeler's bed with him.
The store on
Englehart was a much nicer building than is usually seen in such out of the way
places. It was built upon stout pillars, twelve feet from the ground, to insure
against overflow in event the levees should break, and the lower portion was
finished off as a wareroom. There was a gallery in front and at the back, and a
long flight of steps leading to each of these two resting places. The back
portion of the store was divided into two rooms, serving as office and
Wheeler's bedroom, the former opening on the back gallery.
The two young
men, after discussing the danger of their position, had determined to guard
against surprise. As time flew on, however, and nothing occurred to cause
apprehension, they began to feel satisfied that their establishment was to be
overlooked by gentlemen of color who made their living in such a precarious and
illegitimate manner.
"It is
my belief," said Durieux one day, "that in each case where there has
been robbery, the store was closely watched, and the theft not accomplished
until the rascals were sure that there was enough money in the house to warrant
the danger."
" Yes, I
have thought of that, too. I suspect our indemnity so far has been due to the
fact that our income has not been just what the devils want at a haul. If our
sales were what they were last year and the year before, I guess we would have
handed in our checks long ago. That was a wise thought of Mr. Barrett's,
turning the bulk of the trade into the Sigma store.
"Then we
have our safe, too."
"Yes, a
big safe like that seems to fill a nigger with awe. They actually regard the
mysterious way of opening it as a sort of witchcraft — real conjure work, in
fact."
Durieux
laughed. " Well, I don't care what makes them hesitate — conjure work or
what — just so long as they hesitate long enough for us to save our
heads."
The night
following this conversation, after the store had been closed and the young men
were sitting by the stove for a last smoke before bedtime, something happened
which made them think their crisis had arrived.
Durieux had
brought his razor into the office, and sat there sharpening it with extra care
for use next morning, and Wheeler sat idly watching each flash of the bright
blade, as it moved back and forth over the strop.
A heavy step
came shuffling up to the front door, followed by a loud rap. The two young men
exchanged glances and sat intently listening. The knocking was repeated loudly,
but neither of them spoke. They waited in silence, and heard footsteps
descending the front stair and after a while ascending that at the rear, which
had its head at the office door. A hand was laid vigorously upon the door knob,
and the door rattled violently as a man's voice without called: " Mr.
Wheeler! oh, Mr. Wheeler! Please, sir, let me in; I want some med'cin."
Neither
Durieux nor Wheeler recognized the voice, and again exchanging significant
glances, they waited. The door was a solid structure, with no crack that
admitted of any one's looking into the office, and there was no other opening
upon the gallery, except a window closed with a shutter of solid wood.
The noise and
voice ceased for a few moments, and began again.
"Mr.
Wheeler! oh, Mr. Wheeler!" the man outside called, and then there was a
groan of pain. " Oh, Mr. Wheeler, please, sir, let me in."
" Hello
there!" called Wheeler. Who is that making that racket?"
" It's
me, Mr. Wheeler. Let me in; I want some med'cin."
"Oh, is
that you, Pete?" The two men listened, and the unfamiliar voice answered:
" Yes
sir."
"Go
along, then," commanded Durieux, gruffly. " I'm shaving Mr. Wheeler,
and don't want to be bothered."
There was
silence again, as Durieux thought there would be at mention of the razor, but
only for a time, and the pleading began again, preceded by another deep groan.
"Please, sir, let me in. I got the misery so bad I'm 'most dead."
" Well,
hold on, then, a minute," said Durieux. " Pete! " No answer.
"Humph! " he muttered, " he's forgotten what his name was. Pete!
"
" Yes
sir," the voice groaned.
"Go look
on the edge of the horse-trough, close by the pump, and you'll find that bottle
of Mul-en-ol — the bottle of medicine I was using on the place where Mag cut
herself in the wire fence. You know the one I mean; you saw me put it there.
It's the best thing on earth for the `misery.' Just take a teaspoonful in some
water. Go on; you won't have any trouble finding it."
" Yes
sir," he drawled reluctantly.
"Is the
Mul-en-ol really there?" questioned Wheeler, in a whisper.
"Yes,
it's there. I forgot to bring it in when I finished doctoring the horse. He'll
find it if he needs it."
"Well?"
"Hit's
dark out here. Please, sir, lend me a candle?"
Aw, go to the
devil!" thundered Durieux. " Didn't I tell you I was fixing to shave
Mr. Wheeler and didn't want to be bothered? If I take a double-barreled
shot-gun to you, I reckon you'll leave."
Durieux
strode across the room and snatched up a gun, which he allowed to strike the
floor as he walked toward the door. But there was no occasion for his using it;
footsteps shuffled down the stairway precipitately, which sounded as though
made by more than one pair of feet, and there was profound silence, save the
wind whistling around the corners of the house.
"Christmas comes but once a year, and ev'y nigger wants his sheer."
And he
generally gets it, too. Christmas is the greatest event of the whole twelve
months; transcending all other days as a king transcends his subjects. The
Fourth of July is all very well for a grand picnic, ice cream, and a big
dinner, but it is not Christmas and there is only one period in the whole
calendar which is.
For days
preceding the twenty-fifth, the average darkey is in a state of radiant good
humor and anticipation; planning how he is going to enjoy himself and what he
is going to get for Santa Claus. He spends his cash as lavishly as a Croesus,
upon clothing, presents for his lady love, whiskey and craps, with a sublime
disregard for the days that come after. He wakes up the morning before the
great day, as happy as a bridegroom and as wealthy as a nabob if he has as much
as twenty dollars to spend for things he can do without.
His idea of
the best possible way to fill the thirty-six hours which, in his mind, comprise
Christmas, is to get so gloriously drunk in the first place that he can shoot
off his pistol and yell at the top of his voice without caring a snap who sees
him or who hears him, and he takes dancing, eating, and fireworks incidentally.
Everybody has a bowl of eggnog on tap from six o'clock until it gives out, and
he, and she too, begins festivities by visiting his most intimate friend to
sample his egg-nog and catch him "Christmas-gif'," and pretty soon he
is launched upon his happiness.
The negro is
not the only one, either, who feels toward Christmas a passionate affection
that no other anniversary can command. The "touch of nature that makes the
whole world kin" has set its seal too ungrudgingly for the bond of unity
to be ignored; and the illusive day, so crowded with reminiscences of joy,
sorrow, hope and regret, so overflowing with good will and rejoicing that is
often but a screen for unshed tears, comes, and all of us turn aside from our
marked out pathway to clasp it; and when it has slipped through our fingers,
like another bead in the rosary of memory, we take up our burdens once more and
pursue our appointed course.
The day before
Christmas, the Barrett household was in the season's usual flutter of industry
and expectation. Mrs. Barrett, Nellie, and Lillie were darting here and there,
busy with preparation, and the children were in a state of excitement that
bordered on frenzy. They had not walked normally for a week, but bounded like
toys, inflated with that ephemeral gas called hope. They skipped, hopped or
ran, whichever, for the time being, afforded the best safety valve for
overjoyed spirits' effervescence. They sang or hummed in that nerve twitching
manner peculiar to childhood, until Nellie clapped her hand over her tortured
ears, willing to compromise upon any price for peace and quiet.
Virgil and
Stella held many secret conferences as to the probable gifts from old Santa
Claus, and the various closely wrapped packages that from time to time were
smuggled into the house, supposedly undetected by four keen bright eyes, were
an unceasing source of speculation. Once or twice they succeeded in touching
some of the mysterious bundles and boldly asked questions about them, but the
answer was invariably a sharp command to " let that alone, it's lay overs
to catch meddlers," and thwarted; they went at something else, disgusted.
"Oh
shucks! " muttered Stella upon one of these occasions, as she shook
herself indignantly and marched out of the room. The hot tears rushed into her
eyes and her little lips quivered with wrath. It seemed terrible to have to
live with people who treated her feelings with no more consideration than if she
was a baby, and it seemed to her, with none of the petting and adulation that
was a baby's due, and that she was, without knowing it, steadily outgrowing. A
big tear gathered and dropped upon the hem of her soiled little apron, and she
resolved that she would run away; would go out to Englehart to live with
"Mr. Duwo." He had asked her to come and he at least loved her, she
was sure, for he never, never refused to answer her questions.
She picked up
her small, dirty sunbonnet from under a chair in the hall, and determined that
she would go at once. She reached the back door and there she found her brother
blockading the way. He was upon his knees driving tacks into the edge of the
rug, which he had surreptitiously sneaked out of the store room, together with
the hammer, while his mother and sister were in the pantry. The rug had curled
along the edges and tripped him the day before, and he resolved that it
shouldn't do it again. Stella marched up to him and commanded: " Let me
by, Birgil." The lump in her throat made her voice break, and the little
boy looked up in surprise.
'' Why
sister, what's the matter?" he asked tenderly. " Who made you
mad?"
The little
fellow's sympathy, added to the sight of another big tear that fell just then,
was more than Stella could stand, and she broke down completely.
"Oh
brozzer," she sobbed, "ev'y body is so mean! Movver won't tell me
nussin and sitter tweates me just like I was a dog! Movver gets sings and gets
sings, and she won't tell me what's in em, and ev'y time I asts her she just
says Lay-overs-to-tatch-meddlers.' Do you weckon its lay-overs in all of
em?"
Virgil
scratched his nose with the bead of a tack, thoughtfully. " What do you
reckon lay-overs looks like, sister?"
" I
don't know," said the little girl with spirit. " If they'd just show
me tome one time, I wouldn't bozzer to see 'em any more."
Virgil turned
his blonde head and stared through the open doorway into the yard. "I
wonder if they are to eat," he mused.
The words had
scarcely left his lips when he bounded to his feet. " Whoopee, sister,
Allen's getting ready to kill the turkey! Let's go see."
He dashed off
toward the wood pile. Stella tossed her bonnet aside and flew after him, and
together the two little savages, as blood thirsty as our aborigines, watched
with intense interest the death throes of the poor bird destined for tomorrow's
feast. If either of them at another time had found a baby turkey with a broken
leg or a pecked head, it would have been nursed with the tenderest solicitude
until it died and then found tearful burial in a corner of the garden, but the
connection between a fowl dying from sickness or from some one's design had
never yet occurred to them.
The children
were in every body's way, wanting to beat eggs or run errands, and begging to
scrape every icing dish or cake bowl as soon as it was emptied; compelling the
greatest vigilance on the part of Mrs. Barrett and Nellie to keep the young
tasters from foundering themselves before the great event for which all this
cooking was intended, arrived. In the zeal to help, combined with sudden
exuberance of feeling, several accidents happened.
Both children
were expert dancers and possessed besides the ball-room acquirements learned
from Nellie, many of the fancy steps that were among Lillie's accomplishments.
These last they were often called upon to practice for the benefit of Nellie's
guests, who delighted in having her play the queer timed nigger tunes and
watching the children go through the quaint movements. They performed the
evolutions, like the negroes, quite as skillfully to "patting" as to
music, for it was to that method of keeping time that Lillie had taught them.
Nellie turned
a beautiful white cake, as light as a feather, from the pan, and commented upon
its merits so glowingly, amid general applause, that Virgil began to pat in
expression of his admiration, and Stella, compelled to give vent to her
feelings, hearing the familiar rhythm, involuntarily commenced to "buzzard
lope" with such animation that the pantry table shook, and crash! upon the
floor went Mrs. Barrett's handsome crystal bowl — the one that was her mother's
before hers — left by Lillie's carelessness too near the edge, in hopeless
ruins.
No wonder
that Mrs. Barrett, who was tired and nervous from her work and the children's
noise, gave them each a rousing slap and sent them heart broken out of room.
Their affliction was lived down finally, like many an older person's, but they
refrained from going back to the culinary regions for almost two hours.
Long before
lamp-light Stella and Virgil began begging to be allowed to hang up their
stockings and go to bed, thinking, doubtless, to decoy old Santa Claus and the
great day into coming all the earlier. Nellie, trying to keep their restless
hands and minds employed, sent them to the borders of the flower beds to pick
violets for decorating the table next day; and she, eager to have the benefit
of every ray of departing light, took her needle work and sat upon the front
steps to finish it.
The earth and
the sky were thoroughly water-soaked, and although neither were actually wet at
the time, they threatened to unite with a veil of Christmas rain at any hour.
The elements were like a nervous, melancholy woman, quiet and gloomy; and keeping
every one in anxious dread lest some untoward event might press too heavily
upon the strained curb and precipitate the dreaded outburst. The weather had
for days been warm and sullen, and there had been no fires in the house except
in the kitchen or perhaps in Mrs. Barrett's room early in the mornings, to dry
off the chill of the atmosphere. Out on the lawn, here and there, a pert,
adventurous tuft of orchard grass or clover stood up like a giant emerald in
its setting of faded brown. Flower seeds, too, that had dropped upon the beds
in summer and lain sleeping throughout the autumn frosts, were starting up
cheerily, only to perish with the first icy touch of the coming infant year.
All of the
cooking was finished that could be done before hand, except a few pies which
Lillie was then tending, and Nellie came to the front steps to put the final
stitches in a handkerchief case intended for Durieux on the morrow. Her other
gifts had all been completed and laid aside days before, — the exquisite doilies
for her mother, the new smoking jacket for her father, and the slipper case for
Wheeler; besides others for her girl and servant friends. This one would have
been done too, but it required a little more ribbon and another yard of chiffon
to complete the beauty of its handsomely painted satin; these had to be
ordered, and with characteristic perversity of such things, delayed their
coming until the afternoon's mail.
There was
another gift unfinished and laid away with a tear-drop soaked into ifs embroidered
velvet surface. This one was meant for a photograph envelope, and Dr. Allison
was the one for whom it was designed, but it was folded away and many a bright,
sweet hope was put away, too, as the box lid shut it into darkness. Nellie was
at work upon it and had it half done, when, her father coming into the room
where she sat, she held it up for his admiration, asking gaily: "How do
you like it, father?"
Very
much," he replied, always taking an interest in her handiwork. " Very
much, indeed. I believe it is quite the handsomest piece you've ever made. Who
is it for? "
Nellie was
delighted with his praise. It was her wish to make this the most beautiful of
them all, and she was elated with her success.
"This is
for Dr. Allison," she said vivaciously. She took up her needle again and
was threading it when she heard her father say in that courteous, not to
disobeyed voice she knew so well: " Virgil, you and the baby go out of
doors to play.”
He was silent
until the two children gathered up their playthings and went out of the room,
leaving the door open behind them as children usually do. Mr. Barrett laid down
the paper he had pretended to read that the children might not suspect him of
having an unusual reason for sending them from the room, and went and closed
the door. Returning, he stood with his back to the fire and looked steadily at
the girl bowed head.
"
Nellie," he began, " for some time I have been apprehensive that a
friendship exists between yourself and Dr. Allison which distresses me to
consider. I feel a great delicacy, my dear, in inquiring into your actions or
affections, but this is a matter I cannot leave to the adjustment of chance. I
must therefore put aside my reluctance to speaking to you on the subject and ask
you the direct question: Do you feel any
particular interest in Dr. Allison, — in other words, is his friendship more to
you than that of the other young men of your acquaintance?"
Nellie folded her cold hands tightly in her lap to control their trembling.
Had she suddenly been confronted by the entire bench of supreme judges she
could not have been more daunted, more intimidated. That her father, the one
she revered and loved almost more than any one else on earth should question
her, seemed more than she could bear. He whom she had always looked to as the
arbiter of her being — who had criticized her so sparingly, and loved her so
unboundedly, — that he should speak to her with that cold tone in his voice
made her faint with dread. She had never disobeyed her father willfully in her
life — his commendation was too precious to risk the losing. What was she to
say now? What was she to do? Her brain seemed to be going around in a whirl
that blotted out all ability to act.
Mr. Barrett stood waiting for her to speak, and Nellie knew how he looked
without raising her eyes. He was standing with his proudly poised head bent
slightly forward in order to catch her meaning; his shoulders well back, and
his hands clasped behind him; his earnest eyes, with that unwavering firmness
in their glance, reflecting the self-control and will that harbored behind them, were
bent upon her.
"Nellie, — "
"Yes, father, I heard — "
"Then, my dear, you need not speak. My most poignant fears are
realized." There was a painful silence, and then he resumed. " My
child, that precaution
which I believe to be your only salvation from a future life of sorrow must be enforced. You must
promise me today that henceforth you will have no further communication with
this man."
"Father, stop! How can I promise that?"
"Nellie!" There was a pathos in the exclamation that made the
unhappy girl feel like a culprit. " Has it gone as far as this!"
"Oh, father, how can I make you understand," she cried in her
wretched perplexity. "He loves me so much, so truly, and I — " she
broke off and covered her flushed face with her hands.
" My dear child, what can you know of love? How can you judge of
what is in a man's inmost thoughts by what he whispers into a pretty, willing
ear? Perhaps you showed him your preference, and he, eager for new sensations,
worded what he suspected lay in your own heart."
" Oh, father! " Nellie lifted her head and looked at the author
of this stinging suggestion with a dignity that was true child to a father's
pride.
" I beg your pardon, my child; I did not mean to wound you. Still, I
must reiterate: In this matter you can not possibly be a judge. Think, my
daughter; think of your youth — what is a girl of eighteen but a child? "
For an instant Nellie lifted her head and flashed a sparkling glance at
Mr. Barrett. " Mother — "
"Yes, yes, I know. Your mother was only seventeen, you would say.
But our betrothal took place under very different auspices. I was nearly thirty, and prepared to
provide for a wife, and her parents were anxious for the match, whereas this
Allison — "
" We realize that we must wait. He has spoken of his poverty and his
ambitions. I am willing to wait — "
" Waiting will avail nothing," Mr. Barrett said, trenchantly. "I may as well tell you now
as to disguise the truth. I can never — I shall never, as long as I live, consent
to your marrying Edward Allison!" Mr.
Barrett's voice was rising in anger. "His ambitions," he exclaimed,
filling with wrath at the thought.
His
ambitions, indeed! What could gratify his ambition more than to know himself
married to you — to my daughter, and establishing himself upon my influence
and position?"
" Don't
be hasty, father," she pleaded. " You scarcely know him."
" Not know
him — Nellie, can you compare your facilities for knowing him with mine? You
who see him only in a parlor, when he has assumed his manner together with his
dress clothes? Do I not know that his constant associates are Vincent Minor and
Sidney Carroll?"
"That is due to his unavoidable
circumstances. He has told me how deeply he regrets it." Nellie had
scarcely spoken the words before she realized her mistake. Her father's
self-control slipped from his grasp.
"Nellie,"
he said sternly, I will discuss this matter with you no further. You must
promise me, now, that henceforth you will have no communication with Dr.
Allison whatever. Will you promise?"
The girl
arose slowly to her feet, the forgotten embroidery falling unheeded upon the
carpet. As she drew herself up to her full height, she said firmly, sadly:
" No, father, I can not promise now a contradiction of a promise already
given."
" To
what effect, may I ask? "
"To be
true to him and wait for him until he is in a position to ask you for me."
Mr. Barrett
was staggered by the girl's clear answer and the decisive meaning in her
glowing eyes. He walked to the window and gazed out upon the sunlit leafless
trees. This, then, was the result of eighteen years of example and precept in
the code of honor. He realized all he had lost by thus dallying with chance and
waiting for circumstances to shape themselves. He went back to the fireplace,
where the girl still stood with bowed head, and endeavored to make a last
effort to gain his wish.
" You
must promise me at least, that you will never marry him without my
consent!"
The girl
looked up imploringly.
"Father,
you would make me promise that?"
"And why
not?" he demanded.
"Father,
how can I? Have you not just said that you would never give your consent —
never? Would you take advantage of me?"
"No,
child, no. I would take undue advantage of no one." He paused, and stood
staring at the rug. " Will you promise me, then, that you will not take
advantage of me — that you will not marry him without my knowledge?"
" Yes,
sir, I will promise you that."
"Thank
.you. You will now please write to Dr. Allison and tell him of this interview.
I shall write, too, to tell him of my decision. I shall ask him, if he values
my respect for him as a gentleman, not to seek an interview with you upon any
occasion without my permission."
Nellie, too
full of dumb misery to make reply. went to her room, and Mr. Barrett sat at his
wife's desk and wrote his letter.
An hour
later, when Nellie returned, she handed what she had written to her father,
with the unsealed flap of the envelope uppermost. Mr. Barrett took it, turned
it over and read the address, written in the strong, dashing angles of the
girl-of-the-day's penmanship, then sealed it firmly and put into his pocket.
Nellie was
still near him, standing with bowed head, her tightly clasped hands dropped
before her. He reached out his arms and enfolded her, drawing her to his heart
with tenderest fondness. Nellie threw her arms about his neck, and clinging to
him as though to shield herself from her suffering, burst into a storm of tears
that shook her slender young for with hard, passionate sobs.
It was not
soon that Mr. Barrett succeeded in quieting her. He sat down again, and took
his petted darling upon his knees as he had done years before, when her
beautiful doll slipped from her arms and crashed upon the cruel pavement. More
than once Mr. Barrett's handkerchief was pressed to his own aching eyes, and
then to hers; but he was not a man to shrink from pain when the saving of a
vital part was the alternative.
This had
happened weeks before Christmas and the first sharp edges of her pain had been
dulled by the busy days that intervened. The embroidered velvet had been put
away where the sight of it would not be a reminder of that merciless hour with
her father; and unselfishness made her hide her aching heart from those who
loved her best.
Mrs. Barrett
was visiting a sick neighbor when the interview took place between her husband
and Nellie, and when upon her return Mr. Barrett told her of all that had
transpired, she sighed, and with closed lips trusted to the judgment of him
whose past proved that in all serious matters it was best to rely upon his
guidance. The mother suffered in the grief of her child, but she dared not
interfere where interference might cause unutterable harm. She liked Allison
sincerely, and feared sadly that Mr. Barrett, was unreasonable in his unfaith
in the young mans character; but she felt that she was powerless to prove his
virtues or his vices. Then, too, Mrs. Barrett was one of those particularly
placid women, in whom rebellion toward circumstances or fate was an alien part.
As days went
by, Nellie's cheeks grew paler and her merry wit ceased to sparkle in fireside
chat. She was grave and thoughtful, and nothing seemed to move her to her old
vivacity. Mrs. Barrett was alarmed, and suggested that she should visit her
aunt in New Orleans, where perhaps intercourse with her cousins and their large
circle of acquaintances might restore her to her former peaceful life. When the
visit was proposed to Nellie, she quietly acquiesced. It mattered little to
her now where she was or who were her companions. The sun of her day seemed
set, and twilight was all that was left.
As Nellie sat
on the front steps in the warm, moist air, skillfully twisting her ribbon into
graceful loops and knots, her thoughts were not of the man for whom it all was
intended, but of him who occupied the purest, sweetest shrine a man had ever
been apotheosized to fill the first altar of her girlish heart.
Her chain of
dreary thought was by and by broken by a noise in the rear of the house. She became
conscious that Stella and Virgil were cooing and coaxing to something they
were inviting into the house, and she wondered what new discovery they had
made. She devoutly hoped it was not a new deer, or another coon.
Nellie's many
admirers had a distressing way of sending pets to the children, in the mistaken
hope of ingratiating themselves into the better esteem of the older members of
the family; and if all of the animals that had been sent at various times could
have been gathered together, a zoological garden on a pretty fair scale would
have been the result. There had been deer, rabbits, dogs, cats, raccoons, an
infant alligator, a turtle, a crane, mocking birds, canaries, pigeons, a
pelican, a young otter, a peacock, besides several squirrels; and Nellie lived
in daily dread that the monkey and parrot would come next, for Stella had
revealed the fact that she wanted the latter, and Virgil had openly declared
that he'd just give anything for a monkey."
Whenever a
new animal was received he children went into ecstasies over it, and everybody
who came to the house was consulted as to the best way to rear it, and the most
appropriate name to give it.
The law of
the survival of the fittest fortunately holds good with pets, as with
everything else, and the stock had dwindled down to a setter dog, a maltese
cat, the peafowls, and a white pigeon. So it was with relief that Nellie found,
when she went to the door, that the commotion upon the occasion was caused by
the arrival of the children's greatest pet of all — Lillie’s little boy,
Robert.
Robert lived
with his grandmother, as the children of young negro women who love balls and
picnics generally do, but he had come across the fields to visit his mother,
and Stella and Virgil were bringing him into the house to initiate him in the
delights of hanging up his stocking. This being only the second Christmas that
had come since that young man's advent, he was totally in the dark as to the
required proceedings. The little darkey was toiling up the back steps on all
fours, clutching his stocking in one fat fist and trying to hold his skirts out
of the way with the other. Lillie was following close behind, laughing and
talking to the children and carrying her own stocking, bought for the occasion,
in her hand. When Robert reached the last step, Stella stooped to help him,
retained his chubby hand, while Virgil took the other; and then with
explanations of the great mystery that was soon to be enacted, they walked
along, keeping the colored child between them. This was not Robert's first
excursion into "the white folk's house," for Stella and Virgil
smuggled him in whenever they found a chance, and there they played with him
and fed him on cake and candy to the detriment of anything frailer than goat's
or an ordinary child's digestive apparatus.
The
quartette, followed by Nellie, went into Mrs. Barrett's room and that lady
assisted in hanging the two new stockings over the empty fireplace, side by
side with the children's, which had been hanging there some time.
When this was
carefully done and the children consented to let Robert go, Lillie took her
son by the hand to lead him off. He was willing to accompany her, but be did
not like the idea of leaving any of his wearing apparel behind. He went to the
fireplace and reached up after his stocking, and when Lillie told him again
that he must leave it, he walked out reluctantly, casting glances over his
shoulder and mumbling about " tocin in Mi Ba's oom."
Although Dr.
Allison told Nellie to the contrary, he did at times, bravely as he fought
against it, find Lauren's Station a dreary hole of probation. A hole it was in
truth, situated in the midst of the great swamps, where the railway tracks that
crossed them were built for miles and miles upon an embankment as tall as that
which held the Mississippi's grizzly waters in check. There was a beautiful
bayou, spanned by the railway bridge, running through Lauren's plantation, and
it was in the angle formed by this bayou and the railroad that the depot, plantation
store, and gin house stood. These buildings were all set upon pillars that
raised their floors to a level with the top of the embankment, and they
reminded one of a bevy of schoolboys out for play on stilts. A stranger might
well wonder why houses were built here at all, if they must be constructed with
reference to an overflow as the essential feature; and no better answer could
be given him than to point out the fields at hand, where two men, well mounted,
might ride along between separate cotton rows, so tall that they would be
concealed from each other's view from one end of the field to the other and yet
carry on a conversation all the while. Or where a man might walk between the
rows of corn and see nothing but the green swaying forest about him and a bit
of blue sky over head.
The man who
owns and cultivates such land can quickly become a millionaire; and yet there
are few millionaires in north Louisiana, for that great, silent, anti-wealth
Hercules breaks his fetters once in a while and sweeps the planter off his
feet, leaving him to learn to stand where once he ran.
There is an
allurement, too, that none can resist. No white man can content himself with
his circumstances unless he has a right to claim some of this wonderful dark
soil as his own — the fascination to have and to hold it against all
threatening conditions is a power the native-born can not thwart; so upon this
smiling goddess he stakes his all. From the first dollar put upon the throw, he
becomes more and more involved until the game closes, and he finds himself
vastly rich or hopelessly " broke." Planting is the most hazardous
game of chance, and the planter the most enslaved gambler of them all. He can
not be convinced that luck will always be his foe, and he woos the fickle
coquette year after year, until his grey hairs are laid upon his last pillow
and the last acre of his beloved soil gives him the rest his weary spirit
craves.
These fertile
bottom lands, of which Lauren's plantation is a small part, lying from ten to seventy
miles westward of the river, is like an interminable trough catching the waters
from any break in the levee between the Arkansas boundaries to the white sands
of the gulf; and truly was it once said that this southern swamp was worthy of
a granite wall from Minnesota to the southern sea.
Lauren's
Station, from a social point of view, was absolutely nothing. The only white
people who lived there were the three young men, Allison, Carroll, and Minor;
and the nearest neighbor was three miles distant. The passenger trains and the
two freights that passed the station, going east and west, daily, always wafted
a breath of the outer world through the primeval solitude of the place and made
it seem a little less the wilderness that it was.
In saying
that Lauren's was a place of probation, Dr. Allison accepted one of the
unwritten laws of prejudice. He knew that however well a man might know his
profession, the world demands a certain length of practice before it will hold
out a lifting hand to help him up the thorny steeps to success. Besides this,
he was young; and, what annoyed him sorely, the world would not credit him with
the twenty-seven years his life entitled him to. He came of a fair, lightly
bearded race, and despite his coaxing he had only a handsome blonde mustache to
conceal the youthful smoothness of his face. He was deeply interested in his
profession, loving it as his father had before him, and he had faith in the old
saying, "All things come to him who waits." Whenever Allison quoted
this favorite saw of his, he always mentally supplemented "properly."
So he accepted the obscure practice, with its fairly good income, believing
that time and vigilance would bring in its train age and experience, and with
these assistants he knew that fortune and fame would be subject to his bidding.
A better hearted man never lived than he. He was generous and unselfish to a
degree that made him conspicuous, and he shrank from wounding another's
feelings as he would from wounding his person — far more, for when fulfilling
his duties as surgeon he looked upon his patient as so much valuable material
to be restored to its normal condition regardless of costs.
And yet this
man, with all his excellent qualities, possessed a temper that was hot and passionate.
Friction with his schoolmates throughout his boyhood had taught him to hold
this fiery steed that can so easily bear one on to destruction, and he had
learned to hold it with a steel-like grip that seldom failed in its duty.
There must
have been other traits too to be watched and guarded, hereditary, both, or why
did a sweet girl friend, who had known him all her life, put her best work into
a picture she painted and sent to him? In one corner it was named "The
Three Vices," and the pretty frame revealed a canvas upon which was shown
the corner of a table where stood a half filled wine glass, a pack of cards
with dice lying near, and a cigar with its grey end over the marble edge of the
table sending a slender curl of smoke upward, that floated across the cards and
goblet and made them seem in a misty distance.
Allison
laughed when he unpacked the gift and hung it opposite his bed in the single
small room he called his own, and then he wrote a long cheery letter to his
little friend telling her that her implied fears would never be realized.
Thanking her for her present and its gentle warning, which he assured her was
unnecessary though received in the spirit it was meant, he went on to say that
no one more fully appreciated than he the affliction that two of these vices
had wreaked upon poor frail humanity.
The men who
shared Dr. Allison's isolation were Vincent Minor, the railroad agent, and
Sidney Carroll manager of the plantation. Both of these men clerked in the
store too, for there was not enough employment in the depot, telegraph office,
and post office to keep one man busy.
Carroll was a
native born swamper. His ancestors had been the elite of the parish for close
upon a hundred years, and his relatives still were esteemed among the most
cultured and refined of her citizens; but somehow the mantle of aristocracy was
a misfit on Carroll’s shoulders and had a way of slipping off at times, and
oftentimes at that, disclosing as wild and reckless a scapegrace as ever
blotted a fair record. When he chose, Carroll could behave himself with the
bearing of a young prince, and could converse with a brilliant wit that upheld
his fine old name. Nature in giving him his riotous predilections had shrewdly
enveloped them in a pleasing covering, and Carroll’s handsome face with its
fair coloring and strong masculine beauty, together with his finely rounded
figure, was something to be looked upon the second time, and remembered, too.
Like all of
the oldest and one time wealthiest families of the state, the greater part of
the Carroll property had passed into the hands of aliens, and the daughters and
sons were no longer commanding retinues of well trained servants, but were
occupied in earning their daily bread. The handsome family silver and jewels in
some instances remained, but in most cases this too was lost. It came by aid of
the lands, and when the lands were in danger of departing, it returned the way
it had come, to save the soil from gliding away in exchange for necessities.
Minor was
Carroll's equal in all respects, and differed from him only in outward
appearance and habits of industry. Carroll was the oldest of the three. He was
muscular and active, with a carriage and dignity that pedigree alone can make
unconscious.
He was
somewhat boastful of his physical strength and endurance; and of the latter
advantage no one could doubt who ever watched the quantity of liquids he could
absorb and stand up under. Yet the fact that he held such a place as manager of
Lauren's proclaimed him expert in business, too. He was never a bully, but he
was an incessant tease; and this peculiarity enabled him to carry his point
where the force of his powerful fist would have failed. When Carroll took it
into his head to make a friend do a certain thing or go to a certain place, it
resulted in his doing what he wished him to, or fighting; and Carroll's
childlike good humor and love of fun was such that it was hard to make him
fight until he had first been conquered by the cup which possesses all the
evils that the teacup does not, and then those who knew him best took care to
let him alone. He would bet upon anything, from what a preacher's text would be
to the speed of his own carefully-trained horse, and on again to nigger
shooting craps; and generally, whether he lost or won, it was much the same to
him, provided he had the pleasure of putting his own valuation upon his
opinions.
Sidney
Carroll and Vincent Minor could scarcely remember the time when they were not
chums, and it may have been due to their unlimited opportunities of educating
each other in their respective peculiarities, that they finally became so
thoroughly congenial in all particulars.
Christmas day
passed at Lauren's much as it usually did, with the habitual percentage of
occupation for the doctor, arising from differences of opinion in the ball-room
or over a crap game, and punctuated by knife blade or pistol shot; but, all
things considered the day passed off very quietly, and now the colored social
world was in a high state of anticipation over the approaching wedding of the
daughter of Lauren's society leader, Aunt Parthenia White.
The rain,
which had for so long been threatening, came down at dusk on Christmas day in
torrents of icy drops, and had fallen pitilessly all the day after, with hardly
an hour's cessation, to clear off sulkily at noon on the 27th, the day
appointed for the nuptials.
The evening
for the great event came, and the bride stood before her mirror a vision of
radiant ebony and snowy raiment. She was attired in a beautiful white satin
dress, that had been conspicuous at one or two parish balls, where it enhanced
the charms of one of Asola's prettiest girls; but she, not wanting to appear
too often in the same costume, had transferred the handsome affair to Aunt
Parthenia upon terms satisfactory to them both.
Nothing
necessary to the completion of her attire had been omitted; from the cluster of
white blossoms that held the snowy illusion in place, to the white kid gloves
upon her hands; and the girl stood beholding her reflection in the looking
glass; as happy a mortal as this earth ever held.
She had the
delight of knowing that no other colored bride in the parish had ever been more
beautifully or more extravagantly arrayed; nor was any capable of creating the
sensation that she was now the center of. Her dress waist fitted her
finely-turned figure to perfection; there was not a wrinkle visible anywhere,
and she stood its vice-like clasp with true feminine heroism. She never thought
of flinching when her mother drew up the all important strings in the back, and
the bridesmaid closed the waist in front with the aid of a shoe-buttoner; and
after the fastening was once accomplished she gave no thought of the pressure
about her plump form, except to reflect upon its becomingness. Her finery was
as resplendent upon this dusky descendant of a probable African prince, as a
Worth costume would be upon the daughter of a multi-millionaire; for after all
it is comparison that is the source of opinion, and gives it all its weight.
Miss White
was not what her name would picture to the imagination, by any means; and
there, again, did contrast strike like a sledgehammer. Her round, joyous face,
with its big black eyes, and heavy grayish lips curving outward in a broad grin,
showed beneath her filmy veil, to the admiration of her host of women friends —
as pretty as a face needs to be in its shadowy perfection. She knew that she
was regarded the luckiest girl the sun ever shone upon; for she was stepping
from a realm of great belledom into the empire of envied wifehood. Howard Gully
was the catch of the plantation. He was handsome and debonair, and, what
the negro most admires, delightfully light-complexioned — the life of any
social gathering, the confidential servant at the store, as steady as judge,
and drawing a salary that would make his wife the most important " lady
" on the plantation.
No wonder
Melissa White was happy! Not only had she captured Howard Gully as her own
especial prize, but she had received three handsome presents from the gentlemen
at Lauren's that any bride might have valued.
Dr. Allison
had presented her with a willow rocking chair of the best quality, Mr. Munroe
had given her an elegant lamp, and Mr. Carroll had given her a fine bureau, the
like of which few inhabitants of Lauren's had ever beheld, with its tall
beveled mirror and velvet-lined drawers.
Melissa had
decided to have but one " waiter," and this honored person was Ella
Green. Ella and she had been good friends as children, and when they went off
to boarding school together, their friendship had been securely cemented by the
bond of dependence entailed by their loneliness amid so many strangers in a
large town.
Ella stood
beside her, now, helping her on with her gloves, arrayed in a stylish dress of
pink silk, that made her really pretty face, with its delicate features and
dreamy, fawn-like eyes, seem all the more refined, and caused the too robust
bride to seem at a disadvantage by comparison.
When Aunt
Parthenia went to Mr. Carroll to get him to send off for those things for the
bride that could not be procured in Sigma Or Asola, the question of gloves had
arisen; and when Aunt Parthenia was told what a pair of white kids would cost,
she looked serious, and came to the point with her characteristic promptness
and her strident voice, that discounted Trilby's in volume: " Lissy jes
got to do 'thout 'em den. I 'low I done laid out money enough on dat gal
already to 'vide her wid meat and bread a whole year."
Melissa was
standing near and Dr. Allison saw the look of disappointment that clouded her
countenance.
" Why,
no need of buying gloves, Aunt Parthenia;" he said decisively, " I
believe I have the very things Lissy needs."
He went to
his room in the back of the store and returned presently with the gloves he had
worn the night of the ever to be remembered tournament ball. Melissa was
delighted, and Aunt Parthenia went on, thoughtfully:" Den, Lissy got to
have slippers."
"No need
of buying slippers either," said Minor. I've got the very things." So
he in turn went to his room in the depot, and came back bringing the patent
leather dancing pumps he had worn on the same memorable occasion. These were a
little large, but upon the whole proved satisfactory; for Minor had a small foot
and the bride a rather large one even for her race.
When the
bride and bridesmaid were ready, Aunt Parthenia put the finishing touches to
her own toilette. She wore a becoming suit of black silk, for she considered
nothing so appropriate for elderly persons, nor so altogether ladylike for all
occasions. Her dress was not quite the latest style in cut, for she had had it
four or five years, but it was of exquisite quality and was trimmed with
expensive jet that flashed in the lamp light almost equal to diamonds. Her
costume was brightened by a collar of white lace and a couple of yards of wide
pink satin ribbon at her chin, tied in long ends and short loops.
In describing
the wedding next day to her grandmother, Ella Green dwelt particularly upon the
elegance of Aunt Parthenia's personal appearance.
Parthenia was
an immense woman, standing five feet, eight inches barefooted, and had not an
angle nor a bone visible about her well cushioned frame, yet she was not at all
corpulent; she was simply massive—like her ideas of wedding suppers. She had
lived in every neighborhood in the parish and had warm friends among both races
in them all. She had served in many of the best white families, and it was her
boast that she "had never worked for no po'-white-trash in her life."
She had cooked several wedding feasts in her time and had assisted at balls and
parties without number, and she felt that she, if anybody, ought to know how
such things should be conducted.
She had been
cooking for the young men at Laurens for two years, and having nursed Sidney
Carroll when he was a baby and cooked for Mrs. Minor when Vincent was in knee
pants, she felt that she had a claim upon these two individuals that no one
could dispute. Sidney was still " my baby " to her and Vincent was
" son' as often as Mr. Minor.
Aunt
Parthenia was certainly " quality " to the very fingertips, and
though her language had much of the big-mouthed vernacular of the cornfield nigger
about it, she had made it her duty to see that her only child should be
properly educated. The definition of that term was, to Aunt Parthenia, an
ability to read and figure enough to secure a position as school teacher, and
to be able to play on the organ in Sunday school. When Melissa first came home
from boarding school, she tried to correct some of her mother's careless
methods of expressing her meaning, but Aunt Parthenia would have none of it.
" Go
'long, gal," she retorted, indignantly. "What's comin' over you?
Don't you reckon I knows how to talk? Ain't I ben 'sociatin' wid de bes' white
folks they is ever sence I was knee-high to a grasshopper? Hump! "
Aunt
Parthenia exaggerated, though, in this last statement. She had lived with her
parents in the cotton-field until she was sixteen years old, and the influences
of her earlier training had never been outgrown. She cheerfully stood over the
cook-stove and washtub, winter and summer, that Melissa might have an education
befitting her station in life, and there her duty to erudition ended.
The wedding
guests were arriving rapidly, and Aunt Parthenia was bustling about here,
there, and everywhere; welcoming the people, attending to the fires, and trying
to see that everything was as it should be, all at once. One of her greatest
anxieties was to "keep dem niggers outen de supper-room twel de time
come.' " Lawd," she muttered,
" why don't Elder Claiborne come on, den us kin eat, and git supper off my
mind."
"Aunt
Parthenia," mildly suggested the bridegroom at her elbow, " why don't
you lock up the house — "
"Lawd,
honey, you see dat now, I never onct thought of dat!` Two heads is better'n
one.' Go 'long, Mr. Gully, an' lock hit. I had done clean forgot de do' had a
key. Run over to de sto', too, and tell de doctor an' dem to come on. I
wouldn't have de gent'men to miss seein' de weddin for nothin' on earth, kine
as dey's ben all along."
When the
bridegroom returned, having attended to all of his future mother-in-law's
commissions, sneaking along behind the three white guests and suffering from an
attack of dry-grins, Elder Claiborne was just getting out of his buggy. The
minister of the gospel readjusted his snowy, cuffs and cravat, and carefully
smoothed out the skirts of his Prince Albert coat with his neatly gloved hands,
leaving his admiring attendant, and one or two others who had come forward to
be of service, to see to putting up his horse.
He took his
tall silk hat in his hand and walked up the steps, speaking patronizingly to
his acquaintances standing around him, in his rich bland voice. The buzz of
conversation hushed to a whisper as the august personage stepped upon the
gallery, and the fiddle, that had given spasmodic squeaks every now and then,
was laid upon the mantelpiece by way of removing temptation; for Aunt
Parthenia had gone to the fiddler and said " Romeo, ef you dares to start
a chune on dat fiddle 'fo' de bride 'pears in de do'way, I lay I will pintedly
bust yo' head wide open! "
Aunt
Parthenia was laboring under a great nervous strain, as Romeo could see by the
light in her eye, and he knew better than to run any risks.
When Elder
Claiborne met his hostess at the door and inquired after the state of her
health in his most stately and patronizing manner, she led him aside and said:
" Elder, Gully's got a beautiful ring for de ceremony, but when de time
comes jes let him han' hit to her, 'cause hits too much trouble fur her to git
her glove off; and he kin put hit on her finger most any time, jes' as
well."
"Certainly,
Madam," bowed the elder; "certainly, certainly — but — a — does Mr.
Gully understan' your requeses in the matter?"
" Yes,
sir, I done been 'splained hit all to him."
At last
everything being in readiness, the door, upon which all eyes had been centered
for moments of eager expectation, was thrown open with a flourish, and the
bridesmaid and best man, followed by Lissy and Howard, marched slowly into the
room to the animating strains of " The Dago from Italy," and
everybody pressed forward with keenest interest.
When the
bride and groom had proceeded to the center of the room and were met by the
elder, a great snowy hand was upraised impressively, and a solemn hush pervaded
the room like a benediction.
As the last
words of the ceremony were concluded and the preacher congratulated Mr. and
Mrs. Gully, a shout of relief went up from the over-taxed nerves of the
audience that made the shingles overhead vibrate. The fiddle squeaked and
squawked frantically, and old Romeo screamed: " Git your podners fur de
fust coddill!
Hands and
feet began to pat, and bodies swayed in delighted time to Romeo's music, and
everybody became wild with mirth.
The three
white men were the first, after the preacher, to congratulate the happy couple
and wish them joy, and their example was followed so energetically by the
colored friends, who were to do everything that was necessary to make the
occasion a success, that Gully felt he could endure no more, and dashed out on
the gallery to get a breath of fresh air and regain his equilibrium. This,
however, was an unfortunate move on his part, for the first man he encountered
was Carroll, standing outside with Minor and Allison, and watching the scene
through the open doorway. Gully saw his mistake and tried to dodge, but too
late, for Carroll saw him and began: "Hello, Howard, what's your hurry —
anybody sick?"
Howard was
again attacked with dry-grins, and could not say a word. Carroll caught him by
his coat-sleeve and turned him toward the door.
"Here,
here; this will never do. What will your blushing bride think of your leaving
her to struggle through this ordeal unaided by your protecting presence?
"
Lissy did not
seem to need sympathy. She stood in the middle of the room, surrounded by a
chattering crowd, tossing her head and putting on airs with the ease of a
veteran society leader. Minor was so forcibly struck with the absurdity of
Carroll's championship of the bride that he almost bent double in a shout of
laughter, and the cold perspiration burst upon the bridegroom's troubled brow.
"
Lawd-a-mussy, Boss, for Gawd's sake don't say no more! If I just had something
to kinder brace me up like — "
Carroll
snatched a small flask from his pocket and held it toward him tragically. Howard laughed in spite of
himself, and took the bottle, swallowing a big gulp, envied by the group of
colored spectators. He handed it back to Carroll, but he waved it off, and one
after another black hand reached out for it until it was empty. The last man
who got possession of it had barely time enough to swallow the last drop and
throw the flask out into the bayou, when Aunt Parthenia appeared in the
doorway.
" Mr.
Gully! Howard! Wha' is dat fool nigger done hid hisself!"
She would
have seen him at first if her eyes had not been blinded by the change of light.
Gully stepped forward sheepishly and received his orders: "Go git de bride
and lead de way to de supper room. Bro'er Claiborne, please, sir, fur to
'nounce dat de ladies and gent'men will now walk out to supper."
Parthenia's
house stood some distance back of the store, facing the bayou, and the supper
was spread in a vacant cabin a little further on. Between these two houses
cotton-bagging had been stretched, to keep the bride's silken skirts from being
draggled in the mud. This precaution was hardly necessary, however, by the time
the pathway was needed, for the rain had ceased falling, and the ground was
beginning to freeze hard and clean.
Elder
Claiborne gallantly offered his arm to Sister White as soon as he finished
announcing that supper was ready, but Parthenia declined imperiously.
"Neve min', Bro'er Claiborne; I ain't got
no time for foolishness. You carry Sister Crayton out to supper; she's de most
'portantest comp'ny here," and with these words she preceded the crowd,
her long, swinging stride putting her at the cabin door before the others were
fairly on their way. The fires were hastily rebuilt in the two rooms that were
in use as supper halls, and the lights were turned up brightly by the time
Melissa and Howard took their places at one of the long tables.
These tables
were roughly built of plank upon trestles, and were high enough for the guests
to eat from them comfortably while standing. They were covered with osnaburg,
such as is used for cotton-pickers' sacks, borrowed from the store, together
with the plates, dishes, cups and saucers, knives and forks necessary for the
banquet, and this cotton fabric answered admirably as tablecloth. Upon this
was crowded such an abundance of delicious turkeys, salads, roast pigs, cakes,
and custards as to make the wedding guests stare in amazement. They had come
expecting to see something beyond the usual order of such things, but they were
hardly prepared for such a spread as greeted their vision when they entered the
brightly-lighted rooms.
A small
table, with chairs for three, and set with silver and linen, stood in one
corner of the room where the bridal party was to sup, placed for the white
guests, who came in with the rest and sat down. All who could get to the tables
took their places, and the others, mostly half-grown boys and girls, grouped
around the fire to patiently await their turn.
When the
noise of moving feet had subsided, Parthenia looked to Brother Claiborne to
ask the blessing.
Mr. Claiborne
had never had an opportunity to display his eloquence before to these young
men, nor any other white people, in fact, and he quickly saw his chance, and
grasped it. He began with the convential words of the blessing, and lengthened
them into a prayer; then, waxing rhetorical, he spread into a discourse of such
length that Aunt Parthenia grew restless.
She threw her
downcast eyes first at the minister and then at the bubbling coffee-pot before
the fire, and wondered when he would be through. Brother Claiborne kept talking
and the coffee kept bubbling, and finally, fearful that the latter would all
boil away before it could be used prudence got the better of piety and
Parthenia coldly watched her chance. Brother Claiborne's words flowed swiftly
and smoothly between his tobacco stained teeth with no promise of cessation,
but at last he had to draw his breath and in that instant's time Parthenia
gained the day.
"
Amen!" she shouted briskly, and instantly began bustling about, rattling
cups and clinking spoons with unnecessary energy.
If the big
golden turkey before him had suddenly exploded, Elder Claiborne could not have
been more taken aback. He looked at Sister White for a moment in helpless
consternation, then noticing that the gentlemen over in the corner were still
bowed in prayer, he uttered a sonorous " Amen! " and picked up his
knife and fork.
Three pairs
of shoulders were shaking convulsively. Carroll lifted his bead with tears
streaming down his scarlet cheeks, and catching the dancing eyes of his
companions, he stamped his foot in a paroxysm of mirth and yelled at the top of
his voice: " Three cheers for the bride!"
A shout of
laughter went up in the corner so contagious that a hundred black throats took
it up, and when it had rolled away, the feasting began in earnest.
When the
supper was half over and the merriment at its height, a late guest arrived.
Parthenia was too busy serving ambrosia to go forward and shake hands with him,
so she looked across her shoulder and called out cordially: " Come in,
Allen; glad to see you son. Come up to the fire an’ warm yourseff.”
Allen, for it
was Allen Whitney, came in and walked toward the fireplace, but first he went
to Dr. Allison and handed him a dainty square envelope, such as young ladies
fancy for their correspondence.
Allison took
the note without a word, and without looking at his companions quietly put it
into his pocket and went on with his supper.
"
Ahem!" Carroll coughed and Allison unwittingly looked up, meeting his
merry, twinkling eye. Carroll nudged Minor with his elbow, and both looked at
Allison and laughed softly. Allison smiled too, a blushed, and knowing that he
blushed, flushed with annoyance at his self betrayal.
"Oh,
read your letter, Ed," said Carroll, affectng indifference.
Allison
laughed. "That's all right; it will keep."
"
Eh?" said Carroll, with a lunge at Allison's pocket, " then I'll read
it for you! "
"I swear
you won't! " Allison said positively, though he laughed again and dodged
Carroll 's hand.
Carroll laughed
and made several remarks calculated to irritate Allison, but he took it all
good naturedly until the former, thinking he was not succeeding in his teasing,
said sarcastically: " You are a lucky dog, Ed. I wish I had your chances
at old Barrett's tin through sweet little Nellie."
Like a flash
Allison bounded to his feet, white with fury. "Sidney," he said
hotly, "if you say another word, I'll blow your brains out."
Carroll
retorted sullenly, and Allison left the room.
He did not
notice that Allen was following him until he reached Parthenia's house, and
recollecting that the rooms were warm and empty, he opened the door to go in;
Allen started up the stairs too, and still angry, Dr. Allison saw him and
demanded: " What do you want? "
" I
thought I'd saddle your horse for you sir," the boy replied cautiously.
`Ah, anybody
sick, — who wants me?"
"Is — a
— is you read your letter?" the darkey answered timidly.
"No,
come in. I'll see about it." Allison had forgotten the note entirely. He
went into the house, and going to a lamp, opened the envelope and read the
contents of the communication. Then he went to the fireplace where Allen stood
warming himself, and stuck the note and envelope under the wood in the hottest
coals, and watched it burn to a crisp. The boy noticed the troubled lines that
contracted his brow at he stood staring at the burnt note.
Allison
started from his reverie. " That's all right," he said, "saddle
my horse; I will go and get my overcoat and leggings."
CHAPTER XX
It was a long,
cold ride, black as despair; and the sleet peppered Allison's face until he
almost groaned with the pain. Not realizing how low the mercury had sunk since
nightfall, he started out unprepared to battle with any of the elements but mud
or rain, and he was glad indeed when a faint light delineating the cracks about
the doorway and window of the cabin he was seeking showed that it stood before
him. His first thought when he dismounted was for the comfort of his horse,
and Allen, who knew the place well, took the animal to a dilapidated cotton
house near, where he would be protected from the savage wind.
When Allen
returned to where the young man stood awaiting him, he whispered softly:
"She told me to tell you to knock three times or whistle and call her
name, so she would know it was you."
"What
are you going to do?"
"She
told me to go on home and put up the horse. She said the ground would be froze
and she would rather walk back, and she said you would go back with her."
The hurried exchange
of words was uttered in low tones, and Dr. Allison's voice sank even lower as
he went on speaking: "All right; then, you can go. But, Allen — "
" Yes, sir.'
"Listen
to me, boy. It hasn't been long since I pulled you out of the jaws of death, do
you know it? "
"Yes, sir! God A'mighty knows I ain't forgot it. I certainly would a'died, doctor, if you
hadn't saved my life."
" Well,
listen. If ever you tell a soul on this earth, black or white, that I came here
tonight to meet Miss Nellie, I swear by heaven I'll kill you, if it's the last
act of my life! Do you hear? "
" Good
God, doctor, don't talk that way!" There was an intensity in Allison's
voice that terrified the darkey. "Doctor, I swear to God I won't never
tell. No sir, not if I know they'll hang me if I don't."
" All
right, then, I'll trust you; but remember! "
He reached
out in the dark until he felt Allen's hand, and put two silver dollars into it.
Allen jumped on his horse again, glad to be gone, and Allison went up to the
cabin door. He hesitated, finally giving the required signal, and noticed that
his lips trembled when he tried to whistle.
The door
opened cautiously and he walked in. As the firelight fell full upon him, Nellie
Barrett glided out of the shadows and put her hand in his, her eyes shining
like stars at the pleasure of seeing him once again.
The room was
delightfully warm and cheerful as compared with the bitter cold and blackness
without and Allison, half frozen as he was, when he had clasped Nellie's warm
fingers in the rapture of meeting, crouched over the roaring fireplace to get
the full benefit of its heat. The room was absolutely empty, except for
themselves, two small wooden boxes, and a pile of wood near the hearth. The
dark, rough walls were covered with dusty spiderwebs, dirtdauber nests, and old
wasp nests, that showed up conspicuously in the rosy light of the fire, and
presented a sorry atmosphere of desolation. On the rude shelf over the
fireplace a candle was sending up a dancing blaze to aid the flaming logs in
dispelling the gloom.
While Allison
warmed and dried the sleet from his coat and hat, Nellie sat down again upon
one of the boxes near him. She was embarrassed, now that he lover was come, and
the hundreds of ideas she had planned to exchange with him seemed all gone.
Even the motive which had prompted her to send for him seemed unworthy of
discussion, and she stared into the fire aimlessly. Allison, trying to be
cheerful, and to put her at ease, took off his overcoat and leggings and hung
them upon some nails he found driven into the wall. He drew the other box up to
the hearth, close to her, and sat down, wondering if he might venture to take
one the hands that lay idly in her lap, and clasp it as fondly as he loved it
and its dear owner. He gazed into her troubled, downcast face, and dared not. A
silence he would have given worlds to avoid seemed imminent, and he tried to
escape from it.
"Won't
you take your cloak and hood off? " he said leaning nearer, and speaking
so solicitously in his effort to appear indifferent that the girl started and
almost gave way to her trepidation. She looked up appealingly, and he went on:
"I am afraid you won't feel the benefit of them when you go out into cold
again."
Nellie looked
at him still, scarcely conscious of his words. " Dr. Allison," she
began, determined to be brave and end the embarrassment of their strained
position; "Dr. Allison, I — I am afraid you think that I have lost my
senses, sending for you to come to meet me here, but — but — " She lowered
her eyes and her chin quivered. Tears of mingled self-pity and self blame
sparkled on her eye-lashes, and she proceeded desperately: " They are
going to send me away, and — and — "
" What!
“cried Allison, thoroughly aroused from self-consciousness: "Where are
they going to send you? When?"
No more
acting was necessary now. Both had forgotten themselves and everything else but
each other. Nellie told him her mother's plans for forcing her into society,
that she might be drawn from her heartache. Conversation flowed rapidly and
smoothly, to drift from the serious matter of their parting into renewed
promises of trust and hope.
Nellie had
not seen her lover since several days before the unhappy interview with her
father which ended all intercourse with him; and she had received no word, no
message from him since his letter in reply to her own—the one she wrote him at
her father's command.
When Dr.
Allison wrote, he pleaded his love again, and begged her to trust in him and hope
for the day when he would be able to overcome every objection now urged against
him. This letter the young man enclosed, unsealed, in his answer to Mr.
Barrett, and in the latter communication he told Nellie's father boldly how
devotedly he loved her, and told him that he would never abandon hope of
winning her as long as she was unmarried and he was possessed of physical
strength to provide her with a home such as she merited.
Mr. Barrett's
heart softened inwardly as he read the young man's nobly worded letter, so
filled was it with high resolve and justified pride, but he nevertheless
gratefully received Allison's promise that he would on no condition seek an
interview with Nellie without his consent.
Mr. Barrett's
stern letter stung Dr. Allison to the depth of his strong tempestuous nature
and left him benumbed by his crushed hopes and the knowledge that he could not
see Nellie, nor even receive letters to lighten the sorrows of their enforced
separation. He applied himself to study and work with every faculty that his
aching heart left him in command of, and proudly determining to give the elder
man no excuse for harboring resentment toward him, he went to no house or place
of amusement where he would be likely to meet Nellie. He longed to see her,
daily — hourly, — and now that an opportunity to do so was thrust upon him, he
felt no compunction in availing himself of it with all the ardor suppression
engendered.
Nellie took
off her cloak, and Allison hung it up for her; then he knelt down and took off
her overshoes, placing them, with a delightful feeling of being her protector
and advisor, where they would keep warm until they were needed.
He took his
seat again, and at last obtained possession of her coveted hand; and this he
caressed rebelliously, against Nellie's laughing protests, until she gave up
all effort to dissuade him and abandoned it to his kisses.
" It is
not yours," Allison asserted, his magnificent eyes and smiling, flushed
face expressing all the pleasure the meeting was to him. " It is not
yours at all. You gave this hand to me the night of the tournament ball, and
you have since promised — yes, sworn to me that no one else shall have it!
"
The moments
flew on gilded wings, taking with them myriads of sweet nothings, — that are
nothing, indeed, except when freighted with magnetic glances and melodious
murmuring voices that In themselves are eloquent language to man and maid
ensnared in the meshes of that cobweb fabric, cable-strengthened love. Rapture,
as he watched her every movement, did not wholly blind the lover, and as he
more closely studied the exquisite face before him, he saw that he was not the
only one who had suffered. Nellie's cheeks were bright with color and her eyes
sparkled, but Allison knew that it was pleasure's, not health's signet, for the
face had lost somewhat of its soft roundness and her dress — one he had often
seen her wear before — was loose, and moved with her breathing. There was
something besides which caught his attention, and made him solicitous. He spoke
of this last.
"
Ah," laughed Nellie, " your eyes and ears are too keen. This is only
a little cold, and will soon pass away "
"Yes, it
seems but a trifle," he said, reassuringly, " but I am afraid your
coming out into the cold tonight will make it worse. You must promise me to
take good care of my precious girl when I can't be with her, won't you?"
" Yes,
I'll try," Nellie laughed.
" And I
want you to promise to make her take some medicine, too," he persisted.
" Won't you do that?" he asked with playful seriousness. Nellie
laughed again and without waiting for her to promise or refuse Dr. Allison went
to the wall where his overcoat hung, and taking a tiny medicine case from his
pocket, he brought her a capsule of quinine. She took it from his hand and
gazed wistfully into his eyes while he talked, hardly hearing what his
directions for taking the medicine were. She smiled faintly when he had
finished, and a little pained expression lingered about her mouth as she
said:" I wish you would give me something else, too." "What?
" he said lightly, yet awed by the pathos of her manner.
" You
have given me something to make me well, now give me something to make me
sick—too sick to leave home tomorrow." She laid her hand deprecatingly on
his. "Can't you — won't you?"
Allison moved
uneasily and tried to dispel her weird mood. She leaned forward eagerly, her
eyes growing black and her cheeks paling.
"You
don't know how strange I feel," she said earnestly. " I feel that I
ought not — I must not go away from home tomorrow. Are you superstitious?"
she queried. "Do you believe anything will happen to mother and father if
I go away?"
Allison took
both her hands protectingly in his and stroked them gently.
" My precious
one, you are nervous and excited tonight. Waiting in this old house so long for
me, alone, has had its effect upon your nervous system. You knew that it is
haunted, didn't you," he said gaily, endeavoring to drive away her
earnestness.
" Yes, I
knew; that was why I chose it. Allen tried to scare me from coming, and he
didn't stay one minute after he built the fire. I am not afraid of spirits or
ghosts," she smiled, " although the rats and mice have made some
strange noises in the next room — there's some corn stored in there — but
that's not it; I'm not afraid of that, it's this strange feeling within that I
dread. True, it is only since I have been here that it has come to me."
" You
ought not to have come to this desolate place — " "But," she said,
looking at him, " I wanted, to see you — “
"
Darling! my precious, brave, sweet love! "
That she
would endure so much for him, proved her love more than all the verbal
expressions he had ever coaxed from her and Allison knew no way to thank her as
he wished. To be with her, to clasp her hand, to know that she loved him
fondly, truly, despite her father's prejudice, made his happiness seem divine.
He told her again of all his love, and she forgot her forebodings in the
perfect joy of the moment. They talked of the future so bright with hope of dispelled
difficulties and neither of them could or would believe that fate's decree had
aught for them but bliss.
Nellie looked
at her watch again and started up. " My," she cried, " how late
it is! I must go at once."
Allison would
gladly have detained her, but she shook her head and there was nothing for him
to do but acquiesce. He assisted her on with cloak and rubbers, and assumed
his overcoat.
He took his
hat, and together they stood near the door, each reluctant to conclude the
meeting which would be the last for many months. Allison looked down upon her.
She was so pretty; so daintily, so plaintively sweet. She was going away, and
he would see her no more for weary months.
Allison's
heart beat so loudly, he thought she must hear it and guess its secret. He
longed to take her in his arms and enfolding her to his bounding heart, kiss
her as fervently, as ardently as he loved her. He trembled and turned away.
Once be had
yielded to his overmastering impulses and he dared not follow their dictates
again. Once before, only a few days after the tournament, he visited her, and
after three hours spent delightfully, the clock struck ten and he felt
compelled to go. The night was so deliciously cool without, so warm within,
that they had not gone into the house at all. Nellie was sitting on the gallery
when he arrived and he sank into a chair beside her there.
The moon was
so bright, the velvety breezes so dreamy, that Allison lingered, and having
bade her good bye, they spoke of the night and its beauty — of an thing to
delay the parting.
Nellie leaned
against a column that supported the roof; the mellow moonlight flooding about
her and mingling in her soft white dress made it seem a part of its silver
glow. The seductive roses at her belt and the penetrating fragrance floating
about her from the garden caught up the languorous mysticism of the Southern
night and made her seem a spirit — a subtle breath of luxury.
She was
pensive or laughing and vivacious by turns, thrilled with her new bliss and the
mere joy of living.
Allison
feasted his poetic nature upon her loveliness, enraptured. He said something
about her being a siren who had ensnared his soul. He was standing near —
recklessly near — and she lifted her face with a sparkling retort.
Before he
realized what he was doing, he had caught her in his arms and was straining her
to his bosom. His head sank until his lips were upon hers in fervid ecstasy. For
a brief moment she seemed to him to be returning his caresses — then she
bounded from his embrace and stood apart, her eyes flashing, her cheeks
scarlet, her breath coming in quick, hard gasps.
He returned
her gaze rebuked and miserable. There was nothing he would not have given to
assuage her anger. There was nothing he could say or do. His first thought was
to fall upon his knees at her feet and implore her forgiveness, but his tongue
seemed numb. He turned and left her, unpardonable to himself, and feeling that
he was one who deserved only banishment.
He rode
moodily homeward, never knowing that what he mistook for anger was fear—dismay
at the emotions that were electrically transmitted by his lips, his arms. Never
knowing that he had ruthlessly touched a chrysalis and liberated a timid,
pulsing butterfly — trembling with surprise, like one passing from dullness and
gloom, awakened in a vista of radiant light, perfume, and music. They parted
in misunderstanding, — he to go on his long ride to Lauren's, inwardly cursing
the imp of mischief who had precipitated him into perpetual darkness, she to
fly to the solitude of her own room, and there take refuge in woman's balm for
over-taxed sensitiveness and cry herself to sleep.
When they met
again, Allison saw her blush hotly and turn her eyes away. He was afraid to
approach to crave the forgiveness he had resolved to ask, and she, noting that
he shunned her, thought he deemed his deed unworthy of a second thought.
The breach
was closed in time by assiduous attention to her slightest wish upon his part.
She was keenly perplexed by it all, but she loved him so deeply, so tenderly
that she soon ceased to question his love in return.
As he stood
so near her now in the little isolated cabin near the woods, he yearned to take
her in his arms none the less strongly. He longed to press her to his aching
heart, but he dared not. He could not make her angry now — now that she was
going away.
He took both
her beautiful soft hands in his once again, and pressed them and kissed them
gently. Nellie's head was bowed, and he stooped to see her face.
" My
precious, my sweet, sweet love, you are going away — will you not let me kiss
you, even if only once?"
Tear drops of
sorrow, of keenest grief, rolled into the girl's eyes, and hung heavy upon her
long lashes, but her lips were mute.
Allison bent
his head still lower, and hesitated. She was so still, so silent. He pressed
his lips lingeringly upon her own, once, twice, three times.
He blew the
candle out, and coming back to where she was still standing, her head bent, he
put her hand in his arm and they left the cabin; closing the door behind them.
CHAPTER XXI
A big bay
window in the front of the depot at Lauren's stared gloomily south across the
railway track, and away east and west on either hand to where the track came to
a point in the vague distance.
It was
terribly cold. The mud out in the wagon ruts was frozen as hard as brick, and
Alligator Bayou was covered with a thick skin of ice strong enough to bear up a
man's weight with ease. The depot roof, the platform, and the iron rails of the
railroad, as well as the store and gin in the distance, were covered with a
coating of sleet that made them gleam in the cold dawn and reflect the faint
light stealing over the world as a herald of the coming day.
Long before
its bearer could be heard, the lurid eye of the locomotive glowed afar off in
the west, like an earth-bound star; motionless it seemed in its unswerving
approach.
Nearer and louder
the rumbling grew, and the powerful serpent, shrieking like a descending
dragon of old, dashed through the ice-bound forest of the great swamps and drew
up at the station, panting with impatience at the check put upon its flight.
The engineer blew several short alarming calls; but the pulsing of his
machinery was the only answering sound that broke the profound stillness of the
dawn.
"
Everybody asleep again," muttered the conductor to the brakeman, and the
engineer blew a louder, shriller blast than before. The conductor waited in his
snug caboose, but there was no sign of life without to be heard.
"I'll be
switched if I can see how that fellow Minor can sleep with all this racket
going on," the conductor grumbled, with increasing irritation.
Better go
wake him up. I spect Mr. Minor's been takin' more Chris'mas aboard 'n what is
good for him,” the negro ventured.
" Looks
like it." The conductor reluctantly climbed down from his compartment and
walked along crunching side-track. He ran up the white, slippery steps and
knocked loudly upon the nearest door The ice-glazed woods surrounding the
plantation echoed the blows of his fist mockingly; the only sound belonging to
the station was the musical crackling off a tall cottonwood tree, whose gaunt limbs
were struggling to throw off their weight of ice to the winds as they blew
through its branches.
He knocked
again, louder than ever, and the woods echoed as before. He was getting cold,
and he stamped his feet to warm them.
He knocked
again, and turned to walk he length of the gallery to keep his blood in motion.
He passed the bay window twice, and then idly turning his head in passing the
third time, his attention was arrested by a dim light burning in the lamp
hanging from the ceiling. As he noticed the light, he walked closer to the
window and peered into the gloom of the room. It was so dark within that few
articles were visible, but there was something on the floor that made him start
in surprise and press his face to the wire netting stretched across the
casement as protection to the glass; and as he gazed, a cry of horror burst o
his lips
The engineer
and fireman, indifferently watching his movements from the cab, heard the
conductor’s exclamation, and read the expression upon his face as he turned and
called to them excitedly. As they left their post and ran to their companion's
assistance they were joined by several negroes, who came over to see the train,
from the wedding festivities still in progress at Parthenia's. As one man, the
alarmed crowd pressed against the wire screen at the window, and beheld a sight
that made lips blanch and blood run cold with awe.
Upon the
floor, with his face toward the ceiling, lay Sidney Carroll, a dark stain
spread about him from beneath his back.
" Dead!
"
"
Murdered!"
"Break
open the door; perhaps we can save him. Where's Minor?"
"Go for
Dr. Allison. Hurry! He sleeps in a room in the back of the store."
"What is
Carroll doing here? He sleeps at the store, too, in a room adjoining the
doctor."
Men talked
wildly, and ran about like imbeciles. The door was strongly locked, and the key
was on the inside. Some one brought an ax from the caboose and forced the door
open, and just as they succeeded in gaining access to the interior of the
building Dr. Allison came running, putting on his coat as he came.
The men
crowded into the office, and the conductor stooped and lifted Carroll's head,
but laid it back gently.
" No
use, boys," he said, " it's all over."
Allison stood
staring at the dead man like one in a dream. The conductor spoke to him twice
before he answered.
" I
asked," he repeated, " where is Minor? " "Minor? Oh I don't
know. Isn't he in his room?"
The crowd
moved toward Minor's room, that was back of the waiting-room on the left of the
office, leaving Dr. Allison standing near Carroll, staring at his calm,
peaceful face; but when they reached the doorway they were met by a scene even
more awful than the one they left behind them in the office. The room was small
and in the center, prone upon the floor, lay the body of Vincent Minor.
The bed was
smooth, and everything else in the room seemed undisturbed. The men who came to
the door stood there speechless with horror. The form they had left was awful,
but it was mute. It told no tale, save of cruel murder. It lay upon its back,
so calm that but for the pool of congealed blood lying thick about it, it might
be there in tranquil sleep. But this one was eloquent with a pathos that made
careless men hesitate in pain.
Nature's
first powerful law was stamped in every line of the rigid, lifeless form. It
fell as it had entered the room, face downward, with an outstretched hand
almost within reach of a loaded gun standing against the wall.
The conductor
roused himself. "Come, boys," he said softly. " Business is
business. The train must go on, and the authorities in Asola must be notified
as soon as possible."
The railroad
men transacted no business at Lauren's Station that morning. The flat cars
piled high with cotton bales, and the box cars loaded with seed, that stood
awaiting their coming, were left standing where they were upon the side track,
and the train pulled out and went on its way, leaving Dr. Allison alone with
the dead.
Alone! For
although dozens of negroes crowded about the bay window and gazed with
superstitious dread upon the prostrate form of the man they knew so well, or
sat around the stove in the waiting-room, there was no white man there from the
departure of the train to the coming of the hand-car that brought the coroner
and sheriff from Asola.
The office
doors were closed when the trainmen left, and Allison took a chair and sat by
the stove in the waiting-room adjoining. His breakfast was brought him there,
and taken away again almost untasted.
Negroes came
and went, sitting in the waiting-room or standing on the gallery talking in
subdued tones, and Allison scarcely saw or heard them. Women and children
passed back and forth, and whispered with the men, or to each other.
Howard Gully
hardly left Dr. Allison's side from the time the murdered men were discovered,
for any cause. He sat in a chair on the other side of the stove from him, and
pretended to be asleep, to prevent others from talking to him. Melissa came in
and spoke to him without attracting Dr. Allison's attention, until she said:
"Can't none of us do nothing with her. She's cried and cried, and keeps
sayin, 'They's murdered my baby! they's murdered my baby!' till she looks like
she'll 'most go crazy."
" Who
are you talking about, Melissa?" Allison asked.
"About mama,"
the bride answered, coming over to where he sat. " I'm gettin' so worried
about her, doctor."
"Poor
Aunt Parthenia! She is worn out with her preparations for the wedding,"
Allison said, compassionately. He went over to the bench that ran along the wall,
and taking up his medicine bags from where he had left them the evening before,
he measured out some medicine and gave it to the girl. “Carry this to Aunt
Parthenia, and tell her to take it; then make her lie down. Your mother needs
rest, and must go to bed. Have you had any sleep yourself?"
"No sir.
We was still dancin’ when the train come, and some of the men who wanted to see
it, come over, and ran back to tell us about what had happened. I was so scared
I started over here just like I was, but mama made me change my dress, then me
an' her come on just as quick as we could."
"Go,
then, and go to sleep. Howard, you go too. If I need anything, I'll send for
you; there will be plenty of men here all day."
"La,
doctor, I don't need no sleep! protested Howard, scornfully. "I can sit up
all night and do my work next day as good as the best of 'em. You go, though,
Lissy,' he urged, turning to the girl. "You and Aunt Parthenia is plumb
tuckered out." He followed his new-made wife to the gallery and added in
a lower tone, " I don't want to leave doctor. He looks so 'stressed. He
might need me, and you know, I'm the only 'pen'ence he's got. 'Sides, the
coroner will git here directly."
" Is you
had your brekafas’? "
"I don't
want nothin'. I was eatin' more supper when the train come."
"
There's some hot coffee in the kitchen. "Nem mind. I don't want
nothin'"
'
Melissa went
back to her mother, who sat in the kitchen belonging to the young men
apartments at the store, still crying and sobbing, and Gully went again to his
seat in the waiting-room.
Two darkies
sitting on a bench near a window were discussing the merits of their respective
coon dogs, and further in the room another was telling of his deer hunt the
Saturday before Christmas. There was the hum of voices all around the place,
but the hush prevailing told of the presence of that mighty ultimate victor of
all breathing things.
Outside,
standing near a cotton car, with the winter sun shining upon them, was a little
group of darkies talking earnestly. They were intimate friends, and had
withdrawn to this secluded place to exchange their views in privacy. All of
them were tenants on the place, who had lived there, some of them, half a
lifetime, and all of them long enough to learn to like the two murdered men
sincerely. The men shivered and stuck their hands deeper into their pockets as
the keen north wind swept over and around their protecting car and whistled in
their ears. The tragedy which had been enacted while they reveled in the
delights of feasting and dancing not five hundred yards away, filled their
simple, superstitious brains with a dread that was paralyzing.
"Lord,
Lord, Lord, who could a-done it? Who could have done such a terrible
deed?" old Bob muttered for the twentieth time since he had looked upon
that cruel scene in the depot. He shook his gray head mournfully from side to
side, and groaned.
"Unc'
Bob, you keeps a askin' that question, and God knows I'd like to git it
answered," said a middle-aged man named Rufus. He had a thoughtful yellow
face, expressive of more than the average amount of negro intellect. He moved
about uneasily, and after casting a hurried glance over his shoulder, leaned
forward and spoke tentatively: "Gent'men," he said, "I been
thinkin' hard this mawnin', and I keeps a-wonderin' what made Doctor git so mad
with Mr. Sidney las' night. I never seen Doctor so mad before in all my
life."
The man who
was standing nearest. him started back as if Rufus had dealt him a blow.
"God A'mighty, Rufus, is you stark crazy?" he cried. "Good Lord,
man, don't you never say nothin' like that agin as long as you live!"
"'Scuse
me, Bill," Rufus returned, contritely. "'Fore God, I never meant
nothing’; I was just a-thinkin.'"
" Well
man, keep your thinkin' to yourseff, " Bill answered excitedly, almost
angrily. "God A'mighty, nigger, if such talk was to git out — "
"Bill,
you don't understan' me," Rufus; explained, worried. " I knowed I was
talkin’ ‘mongst my frien's and Doctor's frien's. God knows, man, I'd keep my
mouth shut till it growed together, 'fore I’d say the word that would git
Doctor into trouble."
"Of
course you would, Rufus; of course you would. Bill knows that as well as any of
us does," interposed old Bob, hurriedly. He raised his horny old hand and
scratched the white wool beneath his hat. " Gent'men," he went on,
"hit gen'ly takes old Bob a long time to turn anything over in his mind,
but here sence you all been talkin', it's come to me, there ain't nothin' in
what Rufus says. I tell you, gent'men, sirs, Doctor ain't de kin' of man what
hits another in de back."
" You
mighty right! " several of the group declared positively.
" No
sir! " went on Bob with confidence. " Ef Doctor got anything agin
you, he's goin' up to your face — you hear me?"
"Yes,
Lawd! "
" I just
tell you what's a fack," Bill asserted, stoutly. "Doctor's one of
them kind what don't know what scared means."
" Now
your shoutin'! " Bob declared approvingly. He went on reflectively:
"Mr. Sidney was a good friend to me and Lord knows I'm sorry he come by
his death like he did, but he certn'y could be aggravatin' when he sot hisseff
to tease; spec'ly when he was about half full."
"Unc'
Bob, Mr. Carroll was all right last night. He was as sober as a judge; him and
Mr. Minor both. I was in de sto' when Gully come over an tol' 'em Aunt
Parthenia said come on, and Mr. Minor says, says he: “Shall we take somethin'
before we go over,' and Mr. Carroll thowed his head up, and winked jist so, he
did, an' says: “No, sir, I never drinks when I'm goin' in the presence of
ladies!' Rufus you seen him, you was right there."
" Hyah,
ha, ha! " the group chorused appreciatively.
" Wasn't
that just like him now?" Bob said, rubbing his hands together. " Ha,
ha! Mr. Sidney would a had his joke ef hit was at his own fun'al! "
A sudden
recollection of the cold, stark figure on the floor there, so near, struck him
with remorse, and crestfallen at his momentary levity, two big tears gathered
in his withered eyes and coursed slowly down his wrinkled cheeks. He shook his
head to throw them off and tried to keep his weakness undetected, but there was
no need to conceal his tears, for the other eyes were bent resolutely upon the
frozen ground and only stern determination on the part of the men who owned
them kept them dry.
At eleven
o'clock the coroner and several gentlemen came on a hand-car, and the inquest
was held, resulting a verdict of murder by some person or persons unknown;
then the coroner and all but two of his party returned to Asola, and these two
waited with Dr. Allison until the west bound train arrived bringing the
committees sent by the Knights of Pythias and Knights of Honor to prepare the
bodies for burial and care for them until the grief-stricken relatives could
arrive.
Next day Col.
Laurens came up from New Orleans, bringing with him a man to take Carroll's
place as manager of the plantation, and also a detective upon whom all hopes
were turned for the unraveling of the dire mystery.
The detective
looked wise and hung about the station several days; then scraped the black
alluvial soil from his shoes and went back to New Orleans, having thrown no
light whatever upon the tragedy.
In the
meantime, the parish authorities were doing their best to discover the
murderer. Several negroes who bore unenviable reputations or who were supposed
capable of bearing animosity toward the unfortunate men were arrested and taken
to jail in Asola to await the January term of court.
That robbery
was the motive for the crime, seemed improbable, for there was a large sum of
money in the office safe, which contained the plantation deposits as well as
the railroad moneys; after the men were killed, no attempt had been made to
enter the depot.
Minor and
Carroll were wild, intemperate fellows, but they were universally liked and had
many warm friends throughout the parish, and no one knew of any act of their's
that could warrant a revenge so cold blooded, so dastardly as that they should
be shot in the back through a window, when they were evidently quietly at work
in their office.
When court
convened a week or two later, the grand jury took up the case and examined the
negroes who had been arrested upon suspicion. This jury, composed of seven
negroes and five white men, the foreman being one of the latter, questioned one
after another of the prisoners without eliciting any evidence that could either
incriminate them or point to a solution of the mystery. The foreman was
baffled, and was becoming exasperated. The last darkey was brought in, and feeling
that he was wasting time and gaining nothing for his pains, the foreman turned
to him in disgust and said: “I suppose you were at that eternal wedding, too,
like everybody else?"
" Yes,
sir, I was da."
" And
nothing happened, I suppose,— nothing at all out of the ordinary? You saw
nothing and heard nothing calculated to surprise you? Nothing astonished you
while you were there?"
The negro
shifted his weight from one leg to the other, and scratched his head in
perplexity as he stared stupidly at the foreman. He could not comprehend his
sarcasm, but he did understand his words, and answered somewhat at random:
" Well, boss, dere sho' did somethin', happen what 'stonished me."
The foreman
stopped drumming on the table and looked up. " Well?"
" Yes, sir.
You see, boss, hit was dis way. Me an' my ole lady was stannin' at de fur end
of de table fom Br'er Claibon an' de bride an' Gully; an' close like to de
little table over in de corner what Sis Parthenia had sot dere fur de white
gent'men fom de sto'. Hit was like so: I was a-stannin' like here, wid ole Unc
Johnson Clipper on my right han' side, an' my ole lady on my lef' han' side,
and Burrill Coleman was right at de eend of de table 'zackly, an' I was
a-stannin' so as evry time I looked up I could see dem white gent'men just
a-laughin' an' a-havin' of more fun to deyselves 'n a little! An' bimeby, sir,
I looked up ('cos I was mighty busy wid a turkey wing, I was sir, 'cos dat
supper of Sis Parthenia pintedly was good eatin') — but as I was sayin', boss,
bimeby I looked up, 'cos I heerd de Doctor say, kind a laughin', he did, an' he
says, says he: `I swear you won't!' An' den Mr. Carrooll kep' a-devilin' him,
he did, jus' like he allus done eve'ybody — he kep' on wid his foolishness,
sir, twel de Doctor jumped up, sir, he did, jest as mad as a hornet, an he
says: ` Sidney, ef you say another word, I'll blow your brains out!' and den,
sir, he jest marched outen de do', sir, wid his head sot up in dat proud way a
hisen, an' I never seen him no mo' twel nex' day."
The white men
on the jury exchanged anxious glances.
" Did
the rest of you fellows see and hear all this?" the foreman asked.
"Yes,
sir," some of the negroes answered, in various tones of surprise.
" Why
didn't you say something about it then? " " I never thought about
it," one prisoner answered. " Lawd," said another, " de
murder clean knocked all of dat outen my head."
After putting
a few more pointed questions, the foreman ordered the prisoners returned to
jail.
That
afternoon the sheriff went to Lauren's Station, and Edward Allison was arrested
on charge of the murder of Sidney Carroll and Vincent Minor.
The news flew
like wild-fire, and consternation was intense.
Dr. Allison
made no opposition when the sheriff told him why he had come. He stared at him
hard for a few moments, as if doubting his own senses, and then he told him he
was ready to go.
The
eight-mile trip was made quickly and pleasantly enough, for Captain Barringer,
the sheriff, talked upon general topics as entertainingly as was his habit, and
Allison almost forgot why he was with him, until the strong brick jail, near
the Asola court-house, came into view. He shuddered and turned his face away.
As they got
off the hand-car in Asola, Captain Barringer looked calmly at his prisoner and
said with his brisk cordiality: " Doctor, I invite you to be my guest for
a few days. Of course you understand that I must keep you under surveillance,
for form's sake, but I can't put you over there with the negroes, you
know."
Allison
grasped the speaker's hand and pressed it warmly, unable to express his
gratitude, and the two walked together silently.
Dr. Allison
had never visited at the Sheriff's house nor met Mrs. Barringer, and he flushed
hotly when the introduction was performed; but Mrs. Barringer greeted him so
naturally, with so much easy grace, that he was relieved of much of the
embarrassment that meeting her under such trying circumstances entailed, and
supper being announced soon afterward, the remainder of the evening passed in agreeable
conversation.
Dr. Allison
enjoyed all of the attention due a guest, but he was none the less a prisoner.
Captain Barringer occupied his room with him at night, and at no time during
the day was he or one of his deputies further than arm's length from him.
The case was
not to be called for several days, and in the interim greatest interest was
manifested as to what the result of the trial would be. When taken before the
grand jury, Dr. Allison had refused to give any account of himself from the time
of his leaving the table at the wedding supper to the moment when he was called
to the depot after the train arrived. His friends were anxious when his
attitude before the grand jury became known, and those who knew him only
slightly shook their heads gravely. That instinct in human nature, always
prompt to accept the worst view of a fellow creature's character, was quick to
take the hint, and, setting aside everything that had gone before to the
contrary, attributed motives for the prisoner's silence that argued against
him. His former friends extended to him the usual hand-clasp, but his sensitive
instincts were not slow to divine that deep in every man's heart there rankled
a doubt, a suspicion, that he might be a murderer of the vilest type.
It was in the
afternoon of the third day of his arrest — after the grand jury had found a
true bill against him — that he sat with Captain Barringer in the latter's
sitting-room trying to read. The door opened and the Syrian stood before him.
Both gentlemen were surprised at the peddler's abrupt entrance, and the
sheriff, who knew her well, arose and asked with his kindly courtesy: "
Ah, Miss Mene, you wish to see the Madam? Come this way; I think you will find
her engaged with household affairs in the kitchen."
" No,
no," the woman answered, in her oft foreign intonations, as she waved him
off; "I saw the lady; she tell me I come in."
She put her
satchels upon the floor near the doorway, and stood pinning and unpinning her
shawl, abstractedly. " I not want to sell," she went on, and then
hesitated, turning her weird black eyes first to one and then the other.
"No, I not sell; I want to see Doctor."
Ah,
yes," the sheriff said. " One of your patients, Doctor."
"Yes,"
Omene said, quickly, "you go, Cappitin; I want to see Doctor."
Barringer
hesitated. " Dr. Allison, I can leave the room if you wish, but for your
sake, as well as mine — "
" No,
Captain, do not leave the room. Do not lay yourself open to criticism,"
Allison answered quickly. "I will take her to this window, and she can
tell me what she wants."
He saw as
soon as he had spoken that the woman was not satisfied, but there was no
alternative. He could not imagine what induced her to come to him, for though
he had seen her often in her wandering from cabin to cabin, he had never heard
of her being sick.
The woman
followed him to the window furthest from the fireplace, where Barringer sat,
and dropped upon the floor in oriental fashion, her back against the curtain
and her eyes turned so that she could watch every movement the sheriff made.
There was a large armchair between him and Dr. Allison, that she had pushed
there in passing, seemingly accidentally. She motioned to a low chair, and
Allison brought it and sat down facing her.
" Make
believe," she whispered, holding up her wrist.
Allison bent
forward and took her calm, dark wrist.
As he brought his head close to her own, she fixed her glowing oriental
eyes upon upon him and asked, intently: "Why don't you tell? "
Allison looked
at her questioningly.
"Where
you were when the murder was done," she went on, holding him with her
gaze.
Allison
started. " What do you mean?" he asked, coldly.
" I mean
you must tell."
"I can
not tell," he said, dully.
" Then
Omene will."
"What!"
"
Hush," she said quickly, " not so loud. I know — I know all,
everything."
" You?
Good heavens! Who has told you?" Omene warned him again.
" I was
there — there before she came. I often sleep there when I can't get back. I was
there," she repeated; " I know."
Allison
covered his face with his hands and groaned. " Sh — ! You will tell,
now," she said, nodding her head complacently, " and then you be
free."
He grew white
to the lips. "No, no! My God! don't you see I can't? "
The woman
looked at him in amazement, and then slowly reading his eyes, and the color
that flashed for an instant in his face, she sat still, thinking deeply. At
last she looked into his face wonderingly, and mused, half to herself: " I
don't see," she said slowly. " I was there all the time. You can
prove by me. I saw everything, and heard everything. I tell; it be all right.
You marry her, see? " She smiled at her happy solution of the difficulty.
" I
can't marry her," he whispered back; " her father won't let me. That
was why she sent for me. Didn't you say you heard all she said? "
"
Yes," the woman said, in her quaint, musical way, " but I didn't see
how she mean."
Suddenly a
bright thought seemed to strike her, and her eyes sparkled gaily. " Ah!
you tell, then he have to let her marry you."
He laughed —
laughed almost hysterically, and fell into despondency deeper than ever; and
Omene was serious.
" You
must tell," she pleaded; " they might — " she broke off
suddenly.
" Yes, I
know," he said, bitterly, "they may hang me, or, worse, they may
imprison me for life." He took the woman's hand and pressed it gratefully.
It was balm to him to have sympathy, and, better still, trust like hers, even
from one so lowly. " Thank you, my friend," he said, "for trying
to help me, but you see how impossible it is. If you only knew how wretched my
position is! Still, there is no hope. You are good to try, but nobody can help
me now."
The woman
muttered something in her own language, and looked at him severely. "You
will break her heart," she muttered in vexation. " She love you — ah
she love you so good! "
Allison
groaned. "Yes, she loves me, but she is young; she will forget that when
it is all over; but she could not forget, could never forgive, if I wounded her
honor."
The woman flashed
her eyes at him indignantly. "Ah! you would save her, — you forget your
mother — you will kill her to save the girl! "
Allison
bounded to his feet and paced the room in an agony of thought. He walked back
and forth, blind and deaf to everything present but his own misery, and the
woman waited for him to return. He threw himself into the chair and leaned
toward her again.
" For
God's sake, leave me!" he moaned. " You will drive me mad. I can not
tell; I can not cause my precious love one moment's shame — she is so good, so
true! My mother, my noble, self-sacrificing mother! Would to God I had died
before this curse ever fell upon us!"
He buried his
face in his hands and sat crushed by the weight of relentless woe that he could
not avert. He raised his head and took the woman's hand gently. ` If they do
their worst, go to my mother and tell her the truth. Go to my heart's treasure
and tell her that my love for her is proven; then tell her to forget. You will
take pity on me and do this for me?"
Omene heard
him in a conflict of sympathy and annoyance.
" I go
first," she said, " and tell the judge."
Allison
clutched her hand he held almost fiercely. " No, for God sake, no! If .you
tell, she would have to bear all the blame. She must not suffer, whatever else
may happen! "
" Ah,
she is a woman; she will suffer more if you
But telling
will do no good," he interrupted vehemently, " we will only drag her
name into the courts and avail nothing. We can not prove my innocence."
" Won't
they take my word — mine and Allen's? Make Allen tell too."
" But we
cannot prove anything even then." "You did not get back in time.'
"Yes, I
did. I had unsaddled my horse and was nearly ready for bed when the train
whistled. I heard them knocking on the depot door before they came to
mine."
The woman
clapped her hands excitedly, and Allison in turn signaled her to be cautious.
She leaned nearer and whispered triumphantly: "They were dead, cold,
stiff, when the train came. Didn't you hear them say so?"
Again Allison
bounded to his feet and struggled with a cry for self-preservation, that was
almost maddening.
Captain Barringer sat behind his paper and tried to neither see nor hear
anything that passed. He pitied the young man so cruelly accused, from the
bottom of his heart. He believed it impossible that a man, such as he knew
Allison to be, could be guilty of any deed in the least dishonorable, and that
he could commit a crime so atrocious as the murder at Laurens he believed
beyond all possibility.
Again Allison
sank into his chair. He had calmed 'himself and he spoke firmly: " Heaven
knows I am grateful to you for your sympathy and for your offer of help, but I
can not, I must not take it. She must be spared whatever may happen to me.
Promise me to let the matter rest now; promise me that you will never tell
that she met me in the cabin."
Omene arose
to her feet. Without turning her head to right or left, she went to the door,
and picking up her satchels, she glided out of the room and out of the house.
Two days
later Allison's case was tried. Some of his friends urged him to have it
delayed, but he was apathetic and seemed so hopelessly indifferent as to when
his sentence was passed, that they left him in despair. The district attorney
and judge, both of whom knew and liked Allison, endeavored to persuade his
lawyer to have the case postponed, and attributed the young lawyer's stout
refusal to his ignorance and youth, and mentally accused him of criminal
indifference toward his client's welfare.
"
Well," muttered the judge, with a sigh, when he saw that the lawyer was
obdurate, "it will simply amount to your hanging the poor fellow! While
public opinion is against him, there is very little hope for his
acquittal." Young Mr. Lee, the lawyer, shrugged his shoulders in that lazy
way peculiar to him, and drawled: " Well, Judge, if this jury feels
disposed to hang him upon circumstantial evidence, then we will have to take
the case to a higher court."
Mr. Lee was
not an orator, and this fact added to the distress of Allison's friends. He
sadly lacked the flow of language necessary for swaying an audience; but if he
did not have the gift of using his tongue, he had the more blessed faculty of
holding it. He was excellent in civil courts, because his understanding of the
law was unquestionable, but he always refused to take criminal cases when it
was possible for him to do so, and only took this one because of his genuine
friendship for the accused man.
The
court-house was crowded with a motley throng of white men and darkies of both
sexes. Almost every man and woman on Lauren's plantation had walked the eight
miles of railroad track for the ghoulish pleasure of being present at the
trial.
And there in
the court-room, the same apartment where he had been so carefree and happy as
the accepted lover of Nellie Barrett, Edward Allison stood to answer to the
charge of murder.
The district
attorney examined the negroes who had testified against him before the grand
jury, and they told the same story over again, describing Allison's anger and
repeating his hotly spoken words, amid a prolixity of unnecessary description,
but nothing more could be learned from them. None of them knew the cause of the
doctor's sudden outburst, nor anything further of him than that he left the supper
table very angry. Sidney Carroll and Vincent Minor had gone to Parthenia
White's house, and stood in the doorway for a while looking at the dancers, and
Minor was overheard to say that he had to make out some bills of lading for
cotton and seed; and Carroll saying that he would go and help him, the two went
off together, and no one thought of them again until the train arrived.
Dr. Allison
listened attentively at first to what the negroes were saying, and after two or
three men had repeated the same thing in their characteristic long-drawn-out
manner, his mind wandered, and he sat staring at the floor, thinking of the
bliss and pain that had been his portion since last he was in that room. His
thoughts lingered about Nellie's sweet, girlish face and her charming
womanliness; she was to him his materialized ideal of all human goodness and
purity. At their last interview she told him that her father had forbidden her
writing to him, but he knew that she had reached her destination safely, for
she had sent him a newspaper with the mention of her arrival marked.
There was a
murmur in the court-room, and Allison was aroused from his reverie. He looked
up, and his blood seemed to freeze in his veins. There upon the witness-stand
stood Omene Kirrch the Syrian.
Allison
started to his feet and clutched his attorney by the arm. " For God's
sake," he whispered, "stop that woman, Lee, — she will kill me!"
Mr. Lee
pressed him back in his chair and commanded: "Sit still, Ed, — calm
yourself; some one may notice your agitation."
Allison bowed
his head in his hand and groaned.
Omene Kirrch
never once looked at Allison. When she took the oath, he lifted his head and
riveted his eyes upon her dark, sad face. Once or twice, beneath his gaze, her
eyelids fluttered and she almost turned her head toward him; but she struggled
against the impulse, and answered the questions put to her with composure and
cool confidence. She always spoke with a strong foreign accent, despite her
long residence in America, but she had a good command of language and seldom
hesitated for a word to express her thoughts.
" Where
was Dr. Allison the night of the murder?" she repeated slowly in her
plaintive, musical voice, whose peculiarities could never be described by pen.
" At twelve o'clock he came to a cabin on the back part of Lilyditch
plantation."
For an
instant Allison covered his face with his hands in agony of fear; but the
fascination that the awful revelation she was about to make had for him made
him lift his head and gaze at her again. Young Lee moved his chair even nearer,
and laid his hand with apparent carelessness upon his client's knee.
" What
was Dr. Allison doing at Lilyditch on December 27th at twelve o’clock?"
asked the District Attorney, and Allison shuddered.
" He was
sent for to see a woman," the Syrian answered simply.
" How do
you know this? "
" I was
in the house with her."
" What
were you doing there? " was the next question.
" I was
staying all night. I often sleep there when I can't get back where I
board."
" Ah!
Where is the woman now who sent for the doctor? Why did she not come, too, to
testify in the prisoner's favor? "
She went away
next day to New Orleans."
" Hump!
How was she able to go New Orleans next day if she was sick enough to send ten
miles for a physician at midnight? "
"She was
able to walk," Omene said, with a shrug of her shoulders.
" Yet
you say Dr. Allison was sent for and gave her medicine at midnight?"
Dr. Allison
sat like one in a trance, and listened to the woman in helpless amazement.
"Yes, he
came and gave her medicine."
"How
long did he stay with her? "
" Three
and a half hours."" How do you know?"
The Syrian
drew a little silver watch from her bosom and held it up.
" What
was the matter with the woman?"
Allison
leaned forward eagerly to hear what she would say. For the first time she
turned her head and looked at him, a plaintive little smile hovering for an
instant about her thin lips.
" She
sick here," she answered, pressing her hand to her bosom. " She got —
how you call that? — sick heart; pain all the time. She worse that night."
"Is the
sick woman a negro?"
Allison would
have bounded to his feet at the question had not Lee's restraining hand
detained him. " No," answered Omene, curtly.
"Ah, a peddler
like you?"
Omene
shrugged her shoulders and made a little grimace of contempt, followed by a
gurgling laugh that was almost gay.
"Oh,
no," she said. " You don't find peddlers like Miss Mene every day.
She sell something sometime, but — " She laughed again in child-like
amusement.
" What
was the woman's name? "
Allison
shrank as though he expected a blow. "My God; stop her! " Cold
perspiration burst upon his brow, and his lips blanched whiter still.
Omene saw
him, but never wavered:
" Cornelia
Barretti," she said, pronouncing the old Roman name and the modern one
with a soft, liquid accent that showed them natives of a foreign land. Allison
looked at Mr. Barrett, sitting across the room near Jules Durieux, and
listening intently to the evidence, and he almost shouted in relief.
" How
did she go to New Orleans?"
" By
boat."
" How
did she go to the boat? "
"I don't
know. I left the cabin to do my work before she went to the boat."
" How do
you know, then, that she went to New Orleans?"
Omene looked
at her interlocutor with withering surprise. " She said she was going, and
I heard she was gone, and I have not seen her since. Han! " she concluded,
with a sniff.
The District
Attorney cross-questioned her untiringly, but her answers were straight and
simple, and always the same thing. He sat down and mopped the perspiration from
his brow. He had done his duty, and no one could accuse him of not having put
forth every effort to convict the prisoner. At heart he knew of no man whom he
liked more cordially than he did Edward Allison — no one whom he would do more
for if it lay in his power.
When Dr.
Allison was questioned his voice rang out without a tremor, " I am not
guilty."
He said that
every word the woman had uttered was true. He had been sent for to see a woman
on Lilyditch plantation; that he had gone, and he had given her medicine. He
stayed with her three and a half hours, or thereabout, and then rode home
rather slowly, owing to the mud having frozen and become painful to his horse's
feet. He must have reached Lauren's about half-past five. It was dark
everywhere, except in Parthenia's house, where the negroes were still dancing.
He unsaddled his horse himself, and went to his room to prepare for bed, and
had just gotten into bed when some one knocked on the door and called him. He
told this standing before that crowd of curious, suspicious people, with head
erect and his eyes calmly watching the Judges' faces, and then he sat down and
refused to speak again.
Mr. Lee arose
to his feet when Allison sat down, and addressed the jury. The twelve were all
white men, and he spoke to them in his habitual deliberate manner. He asked
them to question Edward Allison's conduct from the time he had come to live in
the parish up to the present moment. He asked them if they would convict a man
who had always borne himself as a gentleman and as a man of honor, upon circumstantial
evidence, or upon the report of negroes who had seen him display irritability
upon an occasion when none knew the cause of his anger. He asked all present
who knew the disposition of the man who caused his vexation, to reflect upon
the difference in the two men. He asked them upon what grounds a man who had
never been known to show cowardice or malice would be likely to shoot another
in the back and through a window at midnight? Not robbery, for no one knew
better than the accused the amount of money in the safe, and moreover, the
accused knew the safe combination, for it was he who opened the doors for the
new man who was sent by the railway company to take charge of the office.
The counsel
for the defense then urged a point which the district attorney had failed to
touch upon. In the glass of the bay window had been found holes in two of the
panes, and these proved conclusively that two pistols were fired
simultaneously. These two holes were too far apart for it to be possible for
one man to have made them at the same instant, and the fact that the bullets
had entered both of the dead men from the back indicated that they had each
received the death wound before either could turn about in alarm. If one person
had discharged both shots, he could have had no possible motive for changing
his position from one side of the window to the other, when either aperture
gave him complete range of the entire room. Only two balls were found in the
post more examination; one of these was of .38 calibre and the other was of
.44.
Mr. Lee grew
almost eloquent as he warmed with the hope of proving beyond all peradventure
that Edward Allison was an innocent man.
The two shots
that were fired, he asserted, were discharged by two men at the same moment,
resulting in Mr. Carroll's instant death and in Mr. Minor receiving the death
wound which did not cause him to fall until he reached the center of his own
apartment, whither he had gone for a weapon to use in self-defense. He believed
that the murder was committed for the purpose of robbery, just as was the case
in the many crimes committed in Mississippi within the past few months. That robbery
was not effected in this instance was due to Mr. Minor having lived until he
reached the other apartment, and the robbers, supposing him to be concealed,
prepared to defend himself, dared not attempt to enter the building.
As for
arresting Dr. Allison in the first place, he indignantly asserted that it was
preposterous. Dr. Allison's character was too well known to require any remarks
from him upon it, he said, and that, in itself should serve to clear him of all
suspicion, even without the testimony of the woman just heard in his favor,
accounting for every moment of his time from when he sat at supper with his two
friends to the moment when the train arrived. He ate supper at ten o'clock,
according to the statement of the colored witnesses, and left the room, angry,
perhaps; just outside he met the colored boy who had come to take him to the
house where the woman who wanted him was. The roads were muddy and beginning to
freeze and the Doctor could not possibly ride the distance of ten miles in less
than two hours. He reached the woman's side and stayed with her until half past
three o'clock, returning to the station, reaching there at half past five. He
had just gotten into his bed more nearly frozen than otherwise, when the train
came, followed by the startling knock upon his door and the appalling
information that Mr. Carroll was dead. The railway conductor, the fireman, the
engineer, and brakeman had testified that the two men were cold and rigid in
death, and the temperature was at freezing point in the office when they were
found. The fire in the stove was burnt out to the last spark. The lamp was
still burning with a faint blue flame, and the odor from it was strong, as of a
lamp left burning all night.
Friends crowded
about Dr. Allison and his successful lawyer when Allison was pronounced a free
man, and congratulations were showered upon them both, but still — . Why had
Dr. Allison refused so positively to account for his whereabouts the night of
the murder, until after the peddler had given in her testimony?
A short time
later Allison went on a visit to his mother at the old home, and remained there
several weeks. When he came back, he took up his work at Lauren's and was soon
on pleasant terms of friendship with his new associates. The new manager and
depot agent liked him immensely, but still — .
The wind was
raging like a maniac, and the humid cold seemed to penetrate the marrow of her
bones! Ella struggled through the icy mud, dreading every minute that the next
would find her horse bogged to its knees, or, escaping this, that they would be
rolling together in the slush, unable to regain a footing in the blackness of
the night. Her eyes were utterly useless to her, and she could not even see her
horse's head nor her hand held up before her. She trusted to the faithful
little animal's instincts, and coaxed her forward with endearing terms to do
her best for the sake of both. Poor little Betty was not cold, for her struggle
with the mud kept every drop of blood and every muscle in her body in motion;
but the negro girl was suffering acutely with the pain of cold in her aching
hands and feet and fatigue throughout her weary limbs. She knew that she could
not be far from home now — or at least ought not to be; but now and then she
wondered, with a sickening fear, if it were possible that Betty had lost her
way. The girl began to feel a numbness stealing over her that was fast driving
out fear, when all at once the mare gave a little cry of delight that roused
her from her lethargic indifference with a laugh for joy, and at that moment a
flood of light streamed through an open cabin door. The horse whinnied again,
and dogs bounded out to meet her, barking a happy welcome, and the girl
realized that she was at home.
Her
grandmother came to her assistance, and helping her from the horse, led the
poor worn beast to the little stable, where she fed her, taking off the saddle
and giving her the freedom she so well deserved, while Ella hastened into the
cabin and crouched down by the fire.
As she sank
upon the hearth her little boy tottered toward her in his newly learned walk,
expecting her to laugh and pet him in her habitual rapturous way; but the girl
stared into the fire, scarcely conscious that he was near. She shivered and
received his kisses without noticing his happy prattle till he stumbled over
her cloak that had fallen from her, and cried piteously, feeling wounded by her
neglect. She caught him in her arms then and kissed him passionately, cooing to
him; and having soothed him, she caressed his chubby little hand that he held
up to her face, while he nursed himself to sleep.
Old Harmony
took the boy from Ella and put him in bed.
" Come
on, honey and git yo' supper. Ain't you mighty tired?"
" Grandma,
I'm most tired to death the girl said, plaintively, "and it seems like I
never will git warm no mo.’ La, grandma," she went on, as she took the
plate the old darkey brought her, “what made you fix all this stuff for me, I
don't believe I could eat anything to save my life — I just wanted some good
hot coffee, or something, to warm me up."
"Now,
honey, you try to eat," the old woman coaxed, " I got yo' gran'pa to
go kill you dat pattige jest 'cause I knowed you didn't have no appetite."
The girl forced
some of the partridge into her mouth and swallowed it with an effort, and the
old woman watched her with distress plainly marked upon her yellow face.
Ella drank
the coffee greedily and Harmony, disappointedly took the things away. When she
returned the girl was coughing violently, and she laid her hand caressingly
upon her shoulder.
" Honey,
you go to bed right dis minit! Yo' cough is a heap wuss, an' you looks plumb
done up."
"Lawd,
grandma, I wish I could, but my work ain't done yet! " the girl answered,
sadly grave. " I wish I could go to bed. I got to go on, though, jes' as
soon as I can. He expectin' me ev'ry minit now. I jes' stopped by to 'tend to
the baby, so the little fellow could git to sleep in peace an' not bother
you."
" You jes'
can't go no further, child," Harmony asserted emphatically, "you
'most sick as it is. You know he wouldn't have you go on out there for de worl'
ef he knowed how tired you wus."
The girl
shook her head wearily.
" Yes he
would, grandma. You don't know how he's changed. He's cross most all the time,
an' God knows, grandma, I tries to please him!"
She looked up
pathetically through the tears that crowded into her eyes. She brushed them
away resolutely the next moment as the harsh little clock on the mantle-piece
struck ten.
"Goodness,"
she cried, "I didn't have no idee it was so late! "
She got up
stiffly and put on her cloak. Harmony went with her to the stable. Betty had
finished her supper and was dozing in her stall. Ella had her saddled and led
her out to the edge of the gallery where she could mount, and soon they started
out on the lonely road in the darkness. The ground had commenced to freeze at
sunset and since she had left the road an hour or two before, it had hardened
so perceptibly that the ice cut the horse's feet like iron, as she slipped
through the crusts to the softer mud below.
Ella turned
and laboriously retraced her way. She put Betty again in the stable, and went
into the house for a lantern.
Harmony
looked up as she came in and asked the question with genuine distress in every
tone:" Oh, child, what made you turn back?"
"I know
it's bad luck," the girl answered, dully "but I couldn't help it,
grandma; I just couldn't kill the po' li'l' hoss, anyway."
She started
again, and with the aid of a candle burning dimly in the lantern, she could
pick her way along the ditch bank where the ground was hard.
"Maybe
it's best," she said to herself. " I won't git so cold walkin'."
She drew her
shawl closer about her ears, and pushed forward bravely.
In a small
single cabin, almost in the centre of Englehart, Burrill Coleman sat all
alone. The one room of the house and the shed room at the back were as
comfortably furnished and as neat as negro homes are usually, which after all
is saying very little, although Coleman lived by himself and did all the
housework needed in his small establishment.
Tonight he
got up often and went to the door, where he peered into the darkness, listening
intently, only to return again and drop into his chair before the fire. He
could not sit still and again went to the door and looked out impatiently, but
closed it, in the face of the keen wind, and returned to his chair once more.
He pulled out his watch and looked at its slowly moving hands with an oath.
Just as he
snapped its case and was returning it to his pocket, a soft tap sounded
without; he jumped up and unbolted the door, throwing it wide open, and Ella
Green, almost fainting with fatigue and numb with cold, staggered in.
" At last!
My Lawd, Ella," he cried peevishly, " what on earth makes you so
late? I was scared somethin' had happened to you."
" I
couldn't make it no sooner," the girl answered meekly, going to the fire
and crouching down before it. " I most thought I couldn't make it nohow.'
" Humph,
you gittin' mighty delicate all of a sudden! " Coleman muttered
contemptuously, sitting down in the chair he had quitted and glowering at the
girl.
As Ella began
to get warm her muscles twitched so nervously she could not control he self.
" What's
the matter with you, Ella?" Burrill asked testily. "I never seen you
carry on so over a little cold before."
The girl
lifted her wide black eyes and looked at him with a pathos in their depth that
he turned from.
" I
don't know," she said her teeth chattering and her shoulders twitching.
" I most believe; I'm sick."
"Well,
quit your foolishness and tell me what you done. Did you get it? "
Without
answering, the girl reached down as well as she could with her jerking hands
and drew a package from her stocking.
"Is it
all right?" demanded the man, taking it from her.
" Yes,
the money is, but the men — “
" — the
men!" muttered Coleman between his teeth.
"Jim
says if somethin' ain't done pretty quick he's scared Simon's goin' to talk too
much."
" Did
you see Simon? "
" No, I
didn't."
"— your
soul ! " he cried, furiously. " What in the name of God did I send
you down there for?" The girl crouched lower, mutely.
"Can't
you speak? " He grabbed her shoulders roughly. "Do you think I can
stand such foolin'? Why didn't you mind me, hah?" He shook her frail body
violently, and slapped her on each side of her head, demanding, " Answer
me, I say? "
The girl sat
with hot, dry eyes, her hands lying listless in her lap. The man glared at her
vindictively. At last, she said, sadly: " Burrill, when I believed you
loved me I was willin' to do anything, to risk anything, to do what you wanted;
but it's all changed now." A hard, dry sob shook her frail form. 'You
ain't loved me since Christmas — since the night of Lissy's wedding." Her
livid lips quivered, and she looked into his temper-distorted face. "
Burrill! Burrill! Is any woman come between us? Burrill, tell me, is you tired
of me and wants somebody else?"
The man
turned his head and stared into the fire. " If you can't do nothin' better
than to sit there askin' fool questions," he said, harshly, "you jest
as well go on back home. I ain't goin' to talk about nothin' else till you tell
me what I want to know. Why didn't you go to see Simon?"
"Darlin',
because I didn't dare; they was watchin' me." The miserable girl moved
closer, and laid her hand carressingly on his leg. "Jim says they've found
out that a bright yellow girl was helping them, and doin' all the writin' for
'em, and they've got a description of me. He says I've got to be mighty
particular how I shows myself around there; and I come near bein' caught,
too."
"How did
Jim find out so much?" he asked suddenly, ignoring her intimation of
danger that menaced her.
"It's
Jim's business to find out things."
" Why don't Jim skip?"
"'Cause
he's watched too close: “I seen him first thing when I got up the hill. I
crossed the river in old man Hens' skiff, like you told me when I got up the
hill I met Jim, and I just said, ` Howdy, Jim ?' just so, without thinkin', and
he just stared at me and give me the sign, ` Watched.' So I said, ` Excuse me,
sir; I thought you was my cousin Jim, and after that it took me nearly half the
day to git to talk to him. While I was walkin' about town, tryin' to git to see
some of the others, a sassy-lookin' white man came up to me and tried to git
into a conversation. He kept after me to come and git some dinner, and I was
hungry a little, so I went. He made out he was drunk, and kept writin' notes to
me, and I come near givin' myself away. I 'most read the first before I
thought; then I told him I couldn't read; but he kept on askin' me to write my
name, so he'd recollect it, and then I laughed and made out I was tickled, and
wrote it down with my left hand, just in printin'. I kept my knife in my left
hand while I was eatin', 'cause I can do it mighty near as easy anyhow. Then,
when there wasn't no excuse for him to keep me no longer, an' I was startin'
off, he said, ` Ah, gal, you's a cute one, an' it 'most scared me to death. He
made out he was goin', but I saw him following me after that."
Coleman sat
with his head bowed in his hands, buried in deep thought. Ella watched him a
long time, then crawled on her knees to his side and laid her pale cheek
against his shoulder.
"
Burrill," she coaxed, gently, " won't you tell me now? Won't you say
if there's anybody you love more than me? "
The man
looked down into her unhappy, pleading face, so pale, so drawn with mental and
physical pain, and without a word stooped and kissed her dry lips gently. The
girl's heart bounded with joy.
"Oh,
Burrill ! " she cried, throwing her arms about his neck and clinging to
him with all the strength that was left. " You are so good! Just say once
more you love me, darlin' — just say so once more."
The man
reached his arms about her and drew her upon his knees, kissing her with the
same savage strength of passion that had controlled him when he struck her such
a short time before.
"Darlin',"
he said, hugging her almost crushingly; " I do love you, my pretty, pretty
darlin'. I love you more than you got any idea, God knows I do. They ain't no
other woman in this world as sweet as you but, honey, you don't know how nearly
distracted I am. I've got so much on my mind I don't hardly know what I'm doin'
half the time." He kissed her again and again, and she nestled down in his
arms like a happy child. He laid his cheek to hers, and then drew away and laid
his hand on her brow, watching her critically.
"
Honey," he said, gently, " what makes your face so hot? You most feel
like you got fever."
Ella closed
her tired eyes. "I don't know what's the matter with me, Burrill, but I
feel like my head will burst."
"Poor
little honey-child," he said, tenderly, "she's so tired she don't
know what to do."
In spite of
her aching head and tired body, Ella laughed blissfully and kissed her lover's
powerful neck and strong chin again and again, with the potent love that makes
self-sacrifice a heavenly balm to woman, in whatever walk of life fate may lead
her footsteps.
While Burrill
Coleman and Ella were talking in the isolated cabin on Englehart, Dr. Allison
was sleeping once again in his shabby little room at Lauren's Station. When he
awoke the next morning, the first morning after he was proclaimed a free man
once more, his first thought was of his mother and the joy it would be to go to
her and feel the touch of her gentle hand upon
his own; to experience again the strength of the bond of sympathy that existed
between them. He longed to see her and to dispel the torturing fears that must
have beset her since the news of his arrest reached her. To assure her that he
was free and that he was innocent was now his dearest wish. Perhaps it would
ease his heartache, too, if he would confess to his mother his love for Nellie,
and explain everything to her. What a balm to his wounded, sensitive soul it
would be to go to this rock of safety, his mother's love, and unburden his
soul. No one understood him as she did, not even his idol, his betrothed; and
no one was better prepared to advise him and to soothe his perturbed spirits.
He ate his
breakfast indifferently and was anxious to set about his packing, but it seemed
whenever he started back toward his room to begin the pleasant task, another
darkey would come to tell him "howdy" and rejoice with him over his
vindication from the terrible crime he was called to answer to. The news of the
termination of the trial had been carried far and wide by the crowds who
thronged to the courthouse the day before, and the negroes flocked to Lauren's
to further gratify their curiosity. Those who did not know him well enough to
talk to him or congratulate him themselves, were content to simply look upon
him and hear whatever he had to say.
The young man
was so happy over the renewal of his freedom that during his imprisonment
seemed so hopelessly lost, he had not the heart to deny the darkies the
pleasure of staring at him. The crushing burden of shame and anxiety lifted
from him, together with the prospect of a visit home, left him buoyant and
light hearted as a school boy, and he was glad to contribute to any one's
pleasure who came in his way.
It was within
two hours of train time, and Allison knew if he did not desert his crowd of
admiring spectators and prepare for his journey he would not get away that day.
He finally reached his room in solitude and was stooping over his satchel,
with a folded shirt in his hand, when some one knocked for admittance.
" Come
in," he called, proceeding with his packing He expected to hear the same
words of congratulations that he had listened to a hundred times since
yesterday, and did not lift his head. It was Burrill Coleman who entered, and
he stood staring at Allison in dismay.
" Good
God, Doctor, you ain't goin' away! "
Allison
looked up and was startled by Coleman's haggard face. The negro told his errand
briefly: Ella was sick, desperately sick, and unless Dr. Allison could come to
her without delay, he despaired of her life.
Dr. Allison
stood for a moment and struggled with himself. Burrill Coleman watched him
anxiously and recognized the conflict going on within the young physician's
bosom with sinking heart.
"Doctor,
for God's sake don't go! " he pleaded. " Come and see her, and cure her,
Doctor, or I feel like I'll go crazy. I'd give up anything on this earth rather
than her. Doctor, if you is ever loved a woman, come and do your best to save
her for me."
Allison's emotions
almost suffocated him. Had the man not appealed to his love, he could have
denied him better. Burrill stood before him, his lips gray and his eyes sunk
deep with suffering. He thought of Nellie, and wondered if he could go on
living if she were dead. He stifled his disappointment, and closing the
half-packed valise, pushed it under the bed with his foot. He heard Burrill's
deep sigh of relief.
The day
before, as soon as he left the court room, Dr. Allison sent the following
message to his mother: "I am well and happy. I will leave; tomorrow to
visit you."
Today he went
into the office and threw himself in a chair beside the instrument. As soon as
his call was answered he opened the key and sent: "Detained by very sick
patient. Will come as soon as possible."
He closed the
key, and went with Burrill Coleman to the bedside of the sick girl.
He no sooner
entered the little cabin where she lay, than he saw how slender was the thread
that held her to this life. Pneumonia in its worst form had gained such odds in
the battle, that there was almost no hope for her recovery from the first. Her
grandmother had been sent for at daybreak, and as soon as the old woman could
get her shawl and bonnet, she came. Before she left home, she gained the Syrian
woman's promise to stay with the baby until she could return and when Aunt
Harmony entered, Burrill hurried to Lauren's for the doctor, in whom he had
such unbounded confidence. He dared not send for Dr. Allison for fear his
messenger might fail to persuade the young man how urgent was his exigency, and
went himself.
The girl lay
with her black eyes glowing through her pallid face like dying coals. She had
thrown the blankets from her shoulders and torn her dress from her burning
chest in her efforts to gain her breath more freely. As Dr. Allison sat down be
side her and softly drew the covers close to her chin, she recognized him and
smiled confiding gratitude for his coming. She moved her head restlessly back
and forth; " Who is in here?" she asked.
"Your
grandmother and two or three others, beside your husband."
When he said
the last name, he saw her smile with " Doctor, I got pneumonia, ain't I?
"
"
Yes."
"
Doctor," she began again, and faltered, " will I talk out of my
head?"
"No, I
guess not; you are feeling better now," he said cheerfully.
" People
don't never believe what anybody says when they talks out of their head, do
they?"
" Why
no. No one is responsible for what she says when she is feverish."
Ella was
silent for awhile, and patiently swallowed what Allison held to her lips. She
turned her burning eyes upon him again as he resumed his seat, and, whispered:
" Doctor, if I talk out of my head, can't you give me something to make me
stop? I tell you — " she interrupted herself," if I talk too much
foolishness, you make everybody go out of the house but Burrill, won't you?
Burrill will take care of me," she said, lingering over the thought.
" Burrill loves me — loves me so much!"
Dr. Allison applied
his art unstintingly and stayed with the sick girl night and day, only leaving
her to take his meals with Durieux and Wheeler, or to throw himself on the
former's bed occasionally to snatch an hour's sleep.
Old Harmony
and Burrill were with her constantly, too, and did all they could, all that
love could suggest, but there was little to be done.
The end was
not long in coming.
As soon as
news of Dr. Allison's arrest reached Mr. Barrett's ears, he hastened to the
telegraph office and sent this message flashing over the wires to his
brother-in-law in New Orleans: " Don't let Nellie read newspapers. Will
explain by letter."
The letter
followed upon the heels of the dispatch, and Nellie, caring but little for
newspapers at any time, was unconsciously guarded from them as she would have
been from something rabid; and although they contained much space devoted to
the murder of the two young men, and the subsequent arrest and trial of Dr.
Allison, she remained in total ignorance of everything connected with the
tragedy.
She was pale
and subdued when she arrived at her aunt's handsome residence, and looked to
the letters from her parents as the only thing to blunt the pain of
homesickness. Her mother and father wrote to her daily, bright letters, that
contained only news of what passed in the village or at home. These she read
and re-read whenever she could steal a moment off to herself.
She was
forced to mingle in vivacious society, and having several girl and young men
cousins, she had very few moments, and but little, if any, solitude, for
brooding over her sorrows.
Her aunt was
a diplomat, such as silently move kings and sway empires. She was informed why
Nellie was sent to her before the young lady arrived, and being a woman of the
world, and possessed of no patience for undesirable matrimonial alliances or
marriage, generally, except under most favorable conditions, she mapped out
her campaign adroitly and pushed her plans smoothly, unsuspected by the victim
of her conspiracies.
To begin
with, she asserted that Nellie should have her voice further cultivated, while
in the city, by the noted professor who was instructing her own girls; then she
sent the bevy, of whom Nellie was the only listless member, to regular
exercises in physical culture. The evenings were taken up with parties,
theaters, operas, and lectures; and the between times were spent in luncheons,
teas, calls, and shopping. So what wonder that Nellie's bright color returned
and her eyes sparkled with enjoyment.
Nor was this all. Nellie's girl cousins had
cousins who were not her cousins, and among these were young men, and one young
man in particular; and this gentleman made love to her so persistently that
every minute of Nellie's time not consumed by her aunt's devices was taken up
in thwarting his ardent designs upon her affections. Had he been the only
lover, she still might have had a moment here or there for her old heartache,
but others, less bold and importunate, came, were baffled, and passed on.
The gay
city's whirl was not congenial to Nellie. It fascinated and awed her, but often
her little country-bred heart longed to fly from the glare, the splendor, the
hollowness, and the restlessness of it all, and return to the truer, freer life
and the love that she knew awaited her so fervently at home.
At last the
prescribed limits of her exile were over, and she was at liberty to return. The
carnival, with its rollicking, glittering mysticisms was over; the great crush
balls had been attended, and the curtain had dropped Upon Mirth and Feastings
to arise upon Penitence and Prayer. The crowds that had swarmed to the city
from everywhere had dissolved like the pageants of the night, and quiet figures
glided by on missions to the ever-open churches.
When the time
for her return home drew near, Nellie could scarcely veil her delight. It
required all her tact and acting to show her appreciation of the kindness
lavished upon her, and at the same time conceal her joy at the prospect of
going home, and the hope that perchance she might meet her lover soon. She
begrudged the day or two longer that the return by boat would entail, and wrote
asking her father to come for her, that she might make the trip quicker by
rail.
Mr. Barrett
readily complied with her request. There were reasons of his own why he wished
to see her alone before she reached Sigma. He met her, radiant with returned
health and the joy of seeing him again, and in his soul he congratulated his
wife's judgment in sending her away, and offered a fervent prayer of mingled
thanksgiving and hope.
The passage
by rail was rapid and unimportant, and it was not until they had left the train
and taken the boat for Lilyditch landing that Mr. Barrett had the opportunity of
speaking to Nellie in privacy. They made close connection with the little mail
packet at Vicksburg, and Nellie went to her stateroom to lay aside her hat and
bathe the cinders from her face. Her father soon followed her to her room, and
together they sat down in the tiny apartment.
It was a
difficult task that Mr. Barrett had appointed for himself, and be scarcely knew
how best to begin. Her happy face falsely reassured him to some extent, and he
placed his faith in her forgetfulness, upon the rounded beauty of her rosy
cheeks, and the brightness in her eyes. That his child had ever really cared
for such a man as Dr. Allison, Mr. Barrett could not bring himself to believe.
At the thought that she had even considered herself in love with him Mr.
Barrett's temper became irritated, and he resolved to show her fully, before
any other influence could be brought to bear, how greatly she had deceived
herself.
With this
resolve he began, and told the girl all that had transpired during her absence,
keeping back not a single detail. He spoke plainly, dwelling first upon the
fact that Dr. Allison was with the two men, Vincent Minor and Sidney Carroll,
at a negro wedding, just before the murder was committed. Mr. Barrett watched
his daughter narrowly while he talked, and he saw her face flush crimson. She
kept her eyes cast down, and twisted the cluster of little friendship rings
back and forth on her finger nervously.
Mr. Barrett
told, with biting sarcasm, of the three white men participating in the negro
festivities, and proceeded in his account of the tragedy with unconscious
cruelty. " Then," he said, " after Dr. Allison left his most
worthy companions, swearing at one of them in a towering rage, he went no one
knows where, as he refused to account for his actions during the hours that
intervened between his leaving the negro ball and the time when the train
arrived."
"What!"
Nellie gasped, " he refused to tell where he was?"
"Yes; he
refused most positively to say where he spent that time," Mr. Barrett went
on, totally mistaking the expression of dismay in Nellie's face for one of
aversion that he would have given almost anything to know was there.
"Dr.
Allison must have had serious reasons, my child," he said, "for
withholding this information, when he was so well aware of the consequences it
would entail. Public opinion was not slow in turning against him when it became
known that Allison could not — or would not — account for his time the night of
the murder; even those who had faith in his honor before, questioned the
motives which prompted him to maintain his stubborn silence."
Nellie
Barrett's lips were pale and drawn, and the misery in her eyes made her
father's heart sink. She covered her face with her hands and groaned.
"
Nellie, my darling, my child, do not take this man's sins so terribly to
heart."
"
Sins!" the girl cried, raising her head, with eyes flashing. " Father
— " She broke oft suddenly, and burying her face in her hands again, she
moaned, "Oh, my God, if I only dared! "
Her words
were so low and so filled with suffering that they were inaudible. Mr. Barrett
put his arms around her and drew her face close to his.
"Come,
my darling," he pleaded tenderly, "forget this man. He merited
sympathy, beyond doubt, when he was under the charge of murder, but he is a
free man now and fully capable of taking care of himself. You must see, too, my
dear, with gratitude, my far-sighted wisdom in withdrawing you from his
influence. If you had been allowed to engage yourself to him, this affair would
now necessitate your severing that relation, and I rejoice that you are spared
from a duty so unpleasant. I am sincerely glad, for his sake, that Dr. Allison
has been acquitted. His acquittal is honorable, but still — "
The girl's
face was turned from her father's scrutiny as he spoke, and he could not read
the dumb misery that was too powerful to find relief in tears. Her eyes were
bright and dry, and as Mr. Barrett held her still form against his breast, he
little dreamed that what he flattered himself into believing was a revulsion of
feeling, that would ultimately conquer her imagined love, was in reality the
terrible calm that preceded the oncoming of a storm of grief. This revulsion he
gladly thought had come, was a condition he had looked forward to with so much
hope and eagerness that it is no wonder he was blinded to what he might have
read in her face had he been an unbiased observer.
Nellie was
stunned. As her father went on talking to her in his effort to make her realize
how fortunate she was in her narrow escape from having her future linked with
the suspected man, she heard his voice dimly, without understanding what his
words implied. She was thinking of nothing, seeing nothing, but the man she
loved in his hour of anguish; seeing him suffering, humiliated, and for her
sake willing to bear the penalty, even to the sentence of a death too ignominious
to be named, — all rather than that she should be doubted or her actions
questioned. As she sat there with her listless head upon her father's shoulder,
indistinctly bearing his well-rounded sentences as though they came to her
through the vistas of a far-away dream, there was a rap upon the state-room
door that brought her with cruel suddenness to a realization of her outer life.
Her father went to the door and opened it.
" We
will reach Lilyditch in a few minutes, sir," she heard the porter saying.
"Any packages to be taken off."
Nellie arose
to her feet and stood staring before her. Her father came and kissed her
tenderly. " Your mother and the children will be at the landing waiting
for you, dear, — won't you try to smile for their sake?"
The girl
nodded assent with heavy blankness, and mechanically put her hat on and tied
the thick traveling veil closely over her white face.
The boat had
whistled and was putting down the stage-plank when Mr. Barrett and Nellie
reached the deck; and it was but a few minutes before the children were hugging
and kissing her, struggling with each other as to which would squeeze her the
hardest.
When Durieux
saw Nellie for the first time after her long absence in New Orleans, he was
struck with the change that had come upon her. He had watched her growing pale
and languid before she went away, and saw how her merry care-free spirit was
subdued beneath the weight of thwarted hopes put so sternly upon her, but be
was not prepared for the look of intense sorrow — of despair — that now was
settled in her heaven-blue eyes and maturing her fair, face from all its
girlish sparkle. His heart ached for her as he saw her strive to throw off the
shroud that clouded her life and appear as she used to be. Her patience
distressed him, and he wished that she would break into a torrent of petulance
or tears, if only to release herself from the monotony of endurance.
Durieux
summoned all the gaiety and light chatter he could command in an effort to
rouse her to interest in what was going on about her, but he saw that the
pleasure she took in his wit was so transient that it flitted almost before his
words passed into nothingness. He rode with her on horseback as he had done so
often in the old days, but she complained of fatigue and seemed reluctant to
leave her rocking chair. Then one afternoon he brought his buggy and asked her
to drive. She went for her hat listlessly and took her place by his side
without interest and without opposition.
It was
delightful Spring once more, with the sunshine warm and bright, and the whole
world sweet with tender verdure. The plump wild violets peeped their delicate
blue heads over the closely lying leaves along the bayou sides and ditch banks,
and the peach and plum trees grouped about the cabins in the fields gleamed
joyously. Nellie drew a deep breath and leaned back against the cushions of the
buggy with a wistful sigh. Life to her seemed all promises that were cut away
as her hand was outheld to receive them.
She had not
heard Dr. Allison's name mentioned since her return. Her father had not spoken
of him after they left the boat, and believing that her mother's sympathies
were altogether with her father and against herself, she withdrew more and more
into the solitude of her confidences and asked no questions. Yet she longed to
know something; to hear his name, even if but in blame.
She rode in
silence until they had driven a mile or two from home, and Durieux, reluctant
to jar upon her sad reflections, waited for her to speak. He was not looking at
her, yet when she turned her face toward him, his attitude seemed so expressive
of sympathy, her poor starving soul was drawn to him for support.
" Mr.
Durieux," she said, hesitatingly, " will you talk to me?"
Jules was
surprised by the plaintive, peculiar question. He looked at her, and saw that
her thoughts were far away from him.0
"Certainly,
Miss Nellie," he said simply.
She was
silent again and sat pulling the fingers of her gloves as they lay in her lap.
Nellie hated gloves, and never kept them upon her hands when it was possible
to avoid it. To her, they were stifling — a bondage of fashion, that could not
be endured. She never breathed freely when her bands were in their choking
confines. Durieux looked down at her hand now and thought how small and
helpless they seemed in their restlessness.
She saw that
Durieux was watching her and blushed painfully
" Will
you — tell me — " she began slowly, then went on abruptly, " Mr.
Durieux, where is Dr. Allison?"
She looked at
him hurriedly and dropped her eyes again. Durieux answered calmly:
" He is
at Lauren's. He went to see his mother almost immediately after his
release."
"Mr.
Durieux, will you tell me one thing more?" she asked after a pause.
"
Yes," he said, with his eyes straight before him. Nellie laid her hand
upon his arm, and he turned and looked into her pathetic, questioning eyes.
" Mr.
Durieux, do you doubt that Dr. Allison is a perfectly honorable man?"
Durieux moved
uneasily beneath her gaze. He took the trembling hand she had placed upon his
arm into his right hand reverently. " Little girl," he said, "
no man who has your love can be a criminal: But still — "
Nellie
started violently. "Ah, how did you know who has told you that he — that I
— "
He smiled
bitterly. "You told me yourself, first, and then you both told me together
afterwards."
" Mr.
Durieux! — "
"
Stop," he said, gently. " I know what you would say, but let me
explain. My eyes and ears have been keen. I have seen and heard; have listened
to your tone, your voice, ever since Edward Allison first touched your hand in
greeting. I have watched the telltale color in your cheek, and the flutter of
your eyelids as they tried to hide your secret from his searching, magnetic
glance."
Durieux'
voice was low and powerful in its suppression, as he uttered the smooth French
words. He never took his eyes from her downcast face, but went on speaking:
"You told me of your happiness in his presence with every curve of your
features, and the night of the tournament ball, when, according to your promise
of the dance, I took you away from him, and guided you through the crowd, which
was like a dream to you in your unconsciousness of its reality — your oblivion
of everything else but him. Later — later, on the gallery, just outside the
ball-room, I was sitting in the shadows beside a post. The moon was almost
down, and the Japanese lamps had died out, one by one. You and he, pausing in
your promenade, stood for a moment so close that I could have touched you with
my hand. He spoke to you in words that thrilled with love's eloquence; and your
voice, had I heard no more, would have told that you were — "
His teeth
closed tightly on his lip, and a silence fell that was broken only by hardly
drawn breath. She laid her hand upon his arm again, and looked into his averted
face.
"Ah, you
have guessed so much; let me tell you all. Perhaps if some one will share the
burden of my awful secret I will not feel so like a criminal."
Durieux
started, and stared at her white face. She was looking straight into his eyes,
unseeingly, and went on hurriedly:
"You know
so much, but you do not know all. You do not know that it is I who am his
social murderer. You stare at me in doubt; it is so. I, by my act of folly,
have deprived him of his right to hold his head up and challenge the world to
search into his soul. It was I — I, do you hear? — I, who love him better than
my own life — better than my mother and father — I, who have deprived him of
that most valuable of earthly belongings — his good name! "
She paused
for breath, and Durieux gazed at her in distress that he could not conceal. Her
eyes were dilated with excitement.
" Ah,
you scorn me now! I knew you would. But you will keep my secret and hate me as
I deserve to be hated."
For heaven's
sake hush!" implored the man, stricken with a fear that her wild words
were the forerunner of affliction that God alone can heal. He took her hand
soothingly, but she snatched it away, and withdrew from him as far as the
limits of the buggy seat would allow.
"
Wait," she said tensely, " wait till I tell you everything. You think
my suffering has deprived me of my reason, but let me go on and tell you
all."
She went on
eagerly, and told him of her father's objections to her lover, and the cruel
letter, binding him to a promise that he would not seek an interview with her until
his consent had been gained. She told him of Allison’s proud, courteous reply,
and the weeks that passed without bringing her word from him or an opportunity
of seeing him. Then she spoke of the visit she was preparing to make, and her
determination to see him before she went away. Durieux knew the haunted cabin,
and she told how she had sent Allen to Lauren's to bring Dr. Allison to the
interview.
As she
related the details of the night she grew calm,and Durieux sighed in relief;
but as she described how she and Allison walked rapidly over the frozen roads,
and how he stood near the gallery leading into her own room until she went
inside and locked the door, and then went to the window and whispered
"good night" through the blinds, her excitement arose again, and she
concluded : " Do you wonder, now, that remorse is almost driving me mad?
Do you wonder that the self-sacrifice which prompted him to offer his own life
that might be free — that I might escape my father's hatred — ! makes me
willing to do anything to prove to him my love and gratitude?"
Durieux sat
in silence, his eyes bent upon the rug at his feet. The girl leaned forward and
repeated: "Do you not see how much I owe him — how much I am to blame —
what a despicable coward I am, and how noble, how like a martyr he is?"
Durieux
turned his head toward her coldly. " No, I do not see."
Nellie
doubted her senses. " What!" she cried, "you do not understand
what I have told you? You do not realize how much I am to blame, nor how nobly
heroic he is? Did you not hear?"
Durieux
smiled sardonically: "I heard you," he said, still coldly. "I
heard every word you said, but I see neither great blame upon you nor panegyric
due him. You made a thoughtless blunder, and he has done his duty. That is
all."
She gazed as
though beginning to believe in him. "Are you in earnest? "
"Perfectly,"
he said, in measured, icy tones.
" Tell
me — what do you mean?"
" It is
hard to do, but I will try." He hesitated and began: "You were unwise,
to say the least, in meeting him as you did — "
"How
could I help it?" she interrupted; "I wanted to see him so."
"Then,"
said Jules, with his characteristic shrug, "why did you not send him word
to meet you at some landing to go down the river with you? You knew that you
would be alone. He had a right to go where he pleased, in any way he pleased.
Mr. Barrett could not deny him that."
Realizing the
plausibility of the suggestion, Nellie moaned. "Ah why did I not
think!"
"You
should have thought," he went on, calmly. " Not having done so, after
you had placed yourself in — a — I mean, after you met him, he simply did his
duty."
"His duty!"
Durieux, was
nettled. "Yes, I said his duty Where would be our vaunted Southern
chivalry — the brightest jewel our country boasts — if a man shrank behind a
woman to save his life or name, that it is his own privilege to protect. What
man, with the instincts of manhood about him, but would have done exactly as
Dr. Allison has done? "
Nellie seemed
dazed. She stared at him and then scorning his theory, she cried: " It is
nothing then for a man to face the gallows or a life of imprisonment worse than
death, that a woman should not be doubted?"
Durieux's
lips curved sarcastically. " The gallows had not yet been built, nor had
the prison doors been opened to him. Allison had ten chances to one. He had a
good character to sustain him and a good lawyer to plead his cause, while judge
and prosecuting attorney were his friends. A man is seldom sentenced upon
circumstantial evidence, and had this court decided against him, there was
still another between him death. There is something more — " Durieux
stopped abruptly, and both were silent. He looked about and saw that he was
more than six miles from home; it was growing late. Without speaking he guided
his horse's head around toward Sigma.
As the buggy
turned about, Nellie was aroused and noticed where they were. It would be dark
in less than an hour. She sighed heavily and relapsed into her reverie, and
they had gone some distance before she spoke.
" Then
you believe that it was not love that prompted him," she said wearily.
Durieux
started and looked at her sharply before he gathered her meaning. " I did
not say that."
“You said he
was simply doing his duty as any gentleman would have done under the
circumstances.”
“Yes, I said
that."
The girl's
eyes flashed angrily. "Then you are wrong. You are simply cruel and
unjust! Mr. Durieux, I have always looked upon you as a friend, as a real, true
friend, but no friend would deprive me of all faith in human nature. No friend
would try to turn every sublime instinct into ridicule or prove every sentiment
to be but the promptings of selfishness. You are skeptical and you would make
me like yourself. No friend would do that."
Nellie was
trembling with wrath. Durieux, stung by her hasty words, struggled with himself
a moment and then the words shaped themselves without his volition.
" You
are right."
The girl
regarded him with dumb surprise. She had arrogantly accused him, unconsciously
wishing him to dispute her words. He caught her eyes and looked at her with
such compelling force that she could not resist his hold upon her will. He
went on, slowly and evenly: “You are right. I am not your friend, as you say; I
am simply your lover."
Nellie
returned his gaze wonderingly, and felt that she was in a strange dream.
The man she
had always known, the laughing, joking, half cynical Durieux was gone and
before her was a personage whom she had never seen before, nor dreamed existed.
His dark eyes were glowing with a power and tenderness that made them
beautiful. As she mutely questioned the new being before her, his firm lips
relaxed into a smile as gentle as a happy child's. He leaned nearer; still
holding her spellbound with his eyes and asked softly, the bitterness all gone
from his voice: " Why are you so surprised; have I really done my part so
well?
Nellie
covered her face with her bands and moaned: "Oh, my God, why does
everything go wrong!"
She lifted
her head and looked at him almost fiercely. " Why did you fall in love
with me?"
Jules laughed
softly. "I did not fall in love with you," he said with something
like a return of his usual spirits. " When a man falls, there is some
chance of his catching himself, or at least of striking something and bringing
suspense to a conclusion. No," he went on seriously, " I did not
fall; I slipped — I glided into it, much as a man does into a bad habit. It
came so gradually, so insidiously, that I did not know of my bondage until it
was too strong to be broken. I can’t remember when I first realized my
danger," he said dreamily, as though talking to himself, " unless it
was the day you wore your first long dress and combed your hair like grown up
ladies. You came into the parlor where your father and I sat and asked us how
we liked your new dress. I looked at you as you turned around before us and I
was startled; I saw for the first time that you were a woman. That was twenty
months ago. When Allison came, I saw that you were, indeed, no longer a child.
I saw that you were not only a woman, but possessed a woman's heart to give,
and you gave it willingly. And I realized my loss."
Durieux
ceased speaking, and the girl sat like one crushed.
"Three
lives must be ruined," she moaned; "yours, as well as his and
mine."
" No.
Only one will suffer. Your father will some day relent, and Dr. Allison will
claim his own."
Durieux had
taken the lines into his right hand, and his left was lying, palm down, just
above his knee.
Nellie laid
her own over it with infinite tenderness, and her voice trembled: " If
there was only something that could be done — if I could only have saved you
this — " she paused.
Durieux'
hand lay passive beneath her own, although her fingers closed tightly around
it. A chill of repulsion swept over the girl, and her hand dropped back into
her lap. Durieux parted his lightly-closed teeth, and his hand trembled as he
took the reins back into it. He looked at Nellie and saw that she was wounded,
and he inwardly muttered an invective, that was partly a cry of self-disgust,
partly a prayer for strength.
Nellie looked
at him earnestly, and he saw her lips twitch with pain.
"Mr. Durieux,
I wish you could understand me — I wish I could make you know how much you are
to me. I would give anything if you did not love me as you do, because I am
afraid we will now be estranged. I have never thought of you as I have of h — I
mean in the way you wish, because I have loved you in such a different way —
oh, I wish I could explain," she faltered, "but I can not think of
just how to express what I feel. You know I can't do without you any more than
I could without father and mother. You have always been so kind to me,"
she added, desperately serious, " and seemed to understand me better than
any one else — even better than they. I have always looked upon you as I do
upon Carrie and Ruth, only I would tell you what I would not trust to them, because
you are so much wiser, so much stronger than they. You can't understand
me?" She laughed a little, nervously, and her face colored. " I am
afraid the truth, is I have always forgotten that there was any difference
between us except that of age. I have always felt that you were just a good,
dear, stronger sort of a woman — one that I could trust with anything, because
there were no little jealousies or frivolities about her. Please understand
" she pleaded.
Durieux threw
back his head and laughed noisily. He was irritated far more than he was
amused. He laughed again, and his old sarcasm returned, with even greater
force. "So! You don't want me to be a `brother' to you, as some girls ask
their rejected lovers to be. You want me to be a `sister' instead. Well, that's
novel, certainly!"
Nellie's eyes
filled with tears, but tears of vexation. He had returned to his old familiar
way of tormenting her, and it pleased her because it seemed so natural, yet she
was angry with herself for showing her heart to him, only to be laughed at in
return.
Durieux, so
accustomed to studying her translucent face, saw that he had carried his point.
He had succeeded in making her angry, and that at least would prevent her
grieving about his wounded heart.
When he
helped her out of the buggy and opened the door for her, she paused and said
sarcastically, goaded by humiliation and anger: " Thank you, Mr. Durieux,
for a pleasant ride."
Durieux
laughed musically. "Ah, thanks; it is I, though, who am indebted to you.
It is not every day that a man has a chance to tell a pretty girl how dearly he
loves her, and," he laughed, " be accepted as a `sister'."
Nellie's eyes
flashed, and she darted away from him. Before she passed through the door, he
caught her hand and compelled her to wait.
" There
was one thing I said in the buggy," he said, pressing her hand tenderly,
"that was not true."
There were
thrilling cadences in his voice that the girl had never suspected could exist.
" I said there that I was not your friend, but simply your lover." He
paused, and when he went on there was a deeper solemnity than ever, and his
tones vibrated in a minor chord that made Nellie's heart stand still. "I
have said many things to you, little girl, — much that I never meant you to
believe; enough to make you doubt me altogether, and think me what you once
called me, a `long-linked, hollow joke.' Let us begin all over again. I beg you
to forget everything that has ever passed between us, and believe only this:
Jules Durieux is an honest man and desires your happiness above all other
things. I will prove it,"
He dropped
her hand, and passing quickly down the walk, was soon gone in the twilight.
When Jules
Durieux left Nellie Barrett at the door of her home, a new weight of woe was
added to her already overburdened heart. It was his purpose to seek an
interview with Mr. Barrett next day and endeavor to make him look with more
favor upon Dr. Allison and his love for the girl. But with the coming of the
new day came reports of another tragedy that had been enacted in the parish,
and one, too, that drove all other matters from the minds of men for days.
Alvah
Northcot had been brutally murdered. Alvah Northcot, the same handsome cavalier
who crowned Nellie Barrett Queen of Love and Beauty at the tournament, had
been shot down by a gang of armed negroes, banded together secretly for the
purpose of promoting negro supremacy throughout the neighborhood.
When this news
swept across the parish men were set wild with consternation. That such a
secret organization existed was as great a shock to the inhabitants of Asola
and vicinity as was the untimely death of the murdered man. That an
undercurrent of insubordination surged beneath the placid surface of mutual
harmony, seemed almost preposterous to the people who lived in the midst of it
all.
Young
Northcot had to earn his living, and it was his circumstances, and not choice,
that made the only situation with a good salary open to him, that upon Pelican
plantation, as assistant manager for Major Appler. This Major Appler was a
native of Wisconsin, so he said, who came to Louisiana eight or ten years
previous to the time when the incident of this narrative occurred, and opened a
little store on Pelican — a large tract of land belonging to a bank of New
Orleans. He was a close businessman, and soon he owned not only the store, but
the entire plantation; and his interests were so multiplied that he hired a man
as assistant, besides young Felix, his son, who joined him soon after he
entered mercantile affairs. Major Appler had never seen a plantation nigger
until be reached the Southern states, and knew as little of his nature and
peculiarities as the average Louisianan knows of a Hottentot or a Javanese. The
Africo-American was to the Major a human entity — the means, much as was a
mule, of acquiring wealth; and he drew his conclusions accordingly. He was
necessarily interested in the new specimen of genus homo, and could but be
amused by the wit and good humor he displayed. He had some ideas, too, not
gathered from experience, which he brought with him when he came.
Major Appler
was possessed of a most agreeable deportment, that won him a cordial welcome
when he arrived; and a few hints dropped accidentally, as it were, about the
company of wealthy capitalists who had sent him in advance to select a section
of the South suitable for building up oil mills, cotton factories, and lumber
institutions, caused him to be looked upon as a God send to the state,
calculated to develop its natural resources to an extent undreamed of before;
and Major Appler was dined and courted in a manner worthy of the magnate he was
supposed to be.
For many
years Pelican was owned by the bank, and was rented out to darkies upon shares
— the bank sending an agent only during the cotton season to collect rents and
make new contracts, and, as may be imagined, the negroes ran the place pretty
much according to their own ideas. Scarcely a season passed without some
serious cutting, or shooting affray, due to plantation anarchy and bad whisky.
So when the handsome, smooth-tongued Major came, the harassed neighbors and
parish officials looked to him gratefully for a stirring change for the better
under his rule; but to their sorrow, it must be said, no such improvement ever
manifested itself. Things went on much as they had before, for the Northerner
simply knew nothing on earth about handling that necessary evil of Southern
industry — the nigger.
No doubt he
tried to be master of his own property, but at all events he failed, for
between petting them much as be did his dogs when they amused him, and standing
in secret awe of them when the question of holding the mighty dollar arose, the
negroes knew which really held the upper hand.
Alvah
Northcot, who was a thorough going Southerner, possessed of all of a
Southerner's innate instincts of caste and appreciation of the eternal fitness
of things, found his position at Pelican a constant source of mortification.
Often he had to put every check upon his pride and irritability that self
control could suggest. On several occasions he proffered resignation of his situation,
but Major Appler would hear to nothing of the kind.
Northcot,
honest, intelligent and energetic, would have been a hard man to replace, and
his employer thrust such monetary inducements upon him that in each instance he
had reluctantly reconsidered, and decided that the salary was worth holding
one's temper for.
For some time
before his death, Northcot was suspicious that some one was nightly riding his
beautiful little mare, the one that had gained him first honors at the
tournament, and he determined to catch and convince himself beyond a doubt as
to whether his apprehensions were grounded. What at last forced him into this
resolve was her condition one morning when be went to her stable early to see,
as was his habit, that she was properly cared for and fed. This animal was the
one dumb pet he had, and his affection for her was almost as tender as if she
were human. When he examined her, he noticed that she seemed stiff and jaded,
as he had often found her of late; and when led from her stall, she limped so
badly that he was compelled to use another horse for his day's riding over the
fields. Northcot said nothing of his discovery or suspicions where it would be
likely to reach the ears of any of the tenants of the place, and quietly bided
his time until night.
At ten
o'clock, when the lights in the store and house, were extinguished and every
one supposed to be in bed, he concealed himself in a china tree that commanded
a full view of the stables, and waited. Nor did he have long to wait before he
saw a negro unlock the door with a key he brought with him and go into the
building. When he emerged a few minutes later, he led Pet, saddled and still
limping, through the door. The stars were bright, and Northcot watched the man
inspect her closely. When the negro saw that she still limped too badly to be
used, he jerked her bridle savagely and with a diabolical oath kicked her
satiny side so hard that the sensitive animal, accustomed only to Northcot's
gentle hand upon her bit, fell back helpless, quivering with fright. The sight
of the negro's inhumanity made the young man's blood boil furiously. Like a
demon he leaped from his concealment, and, drawing his pistol, struck the negro
over his head with all the strength be possessed.
The negro,
taken by surprise, bounded back, cursing in foulest language, and Northcot,
thoroughly enraged, followed up his advantage, beating him unmercifully.
When
Northcot's wrath was appeased, he allowed his adversary to arise, and the negro
slunk away muttering imprecations of vengeance.
Northcot
stroked the still excited mare until she was calmed and returned her to her
stall, locking the door and putting the negro's key into his own pocket.
The next day,
when Major Appler was told of the encounter, to Northcot's further vexation he
expressed deepest regret, and this developed into annoyance when he found that
the negro whom Northcot had chastised was one of his most lucrative tenants
besides being one of his greatest favorites. He spoke roughly to Northcot of
the part he had taken in punishing the darkey and warned him menacingly never
to allow his personal feelings to get the better of his discretion in such a
manner again.
The young man
was still smarting with the negro's impudence and the effect of his own anger
and retorted hotly. "Major Appler," he said indignantly, "you
may consider my resignation to my position on this place constantly tendered,
subject to your acceptance; but in the meanwhile, as long as I am here I insist
upon being treated with justice and respect by every darkey on this place. I
have endured more impudence from negroes since I have been in your employ than
I have in all the rest of my life put together, and if you were a gentleman,
you would know how hard such insolence is to endure."
With these
words he left the room.
A week went by
and everything on the plantation seemed to be moving smoothly. All of the
darkies who had occasion to speak to Northcot or work under his supervision
showed him the same or greater respect than before; the man whom be had whipped
greeted him with sullen politeness that he recognized was forced, yet showing
that the negro recognized in him his superior.
Northcot's
widowed sister lived in Asola, and it was his habit to spend every Sunday with
her and her children in their happy little home. He had almost forgotten his
trouble with the negro during the week that intervened, and lingered at his
sister's until nearly eleven o'clock on the Sunday night following his
encounter, enjoying the evening unusually well in conversation with his sister
and some young ladies who were making her a visit. When admonished by his
sister that bedtime had arrived, he reluctantly took his departure and rode
across the principal street of Asola on his way back to Pelican. He had gone
but a little way when Felix, who was just leaving town also, rode up to him and
together they turned into the bayou road and cantered toward the plantation.
"Papa
has been gone some time," the boy said, in response to Alvah's query.
" He was not feeling very well, and said he would go on and go to bed. As
it was so early, I thought I would wait and ride along with you; but I was
beginning to believe you were going to stay all night."
Alvah rather
liked this half-grown boy. There was a certain manliness linked with his still
childish mannerisms that made him generally popular, despite the fact that be
was a relative of the now unpopular Major, and they rode along, talking idly
upon commonplace subjects, as people constantly in each other's society are apt
to do when going over a road, as they were now, so familiar that either could
have traversed it blindfolded.
It was a
dreamy, star-lit night, soft and warm as swansdown. There was enough light to
make objects along the way dimly visible, showing the bare fields to the left,
wide and dusky, and the Pecan Bayou on the right, a mysterious line of darkness
and light. The stream was wide and deep enough from the recent rains to merit
the name of river and bear a good-sized steamboat upon its bosom, but it was so
filled with willows, sycamores, and oaks, that only in places did the water
gleam beneath the stars or reveal the opposite shore. The trees and their
accompanying undergrowth of shrubs and vines rioted up to the banks in tropical
luxuriance to the edge of the wheel-tracks here and there, and made a gloomy
fringe of shadow along the wayside the entire distance.
The two boys,
as they might be called for Felix was only sixteen and Alvah had not yet much
passed his twenty-fourth birthday, — had entered upon the last mile of their
way, and had passed the division line of Pelican. As they drew beneath the
shadows of an unusually thick clump of saplings, Pet shied violently. Her rider
spoke to her soothingly, trying to calm her fears, but the words were scarcely
uttered when the report of a gun rang out sharply upon the night air, and Alvah
Northcot fell to the ground with a bullet in his brain.
Only one shot
was fired, but men armed with guns bounded into the road, and Felix, seized
with a panic of terror, striking his spurs into his horse's side, dashed across
the open fields to the woods like a madman.
Major Appler
was fond of his morning nap and was seldom ready to leave his room until
breakfast was upon the table. He slept even later than usual the morning after
the midnight assault on the roadside, and when he at last went into the
dining-room he was surprised to find neither his son nor Northcot ready to join
him at the meal. Neither of the young men were in the house, and as he was
inquiring where they were some one said that Northcot's horse was found at
daylight near the gate, waiting for admittance, with saddle and bridle on.
In the mean
time several negroes, going or coming, passed the form of a man lying on the
roadside; but, negro-like, for fear of being suspected or implicated in a
murder, they hurried away, speaking to no one of what they had seen or
apprehended, and it was not until a white man chanced that way that knowledge
of the assassination reached the people of Asola. In less than an hour after
the news was brought the town was in a fever of indignation. Vengeance seemed
to cry out from the very soil which the young man's foot had pressed from his
infancy.
No one knew
or guessed who could have committed the hideous deed, until Major Appler
discovered that his son had disappeared. He was really fond of the boy, and,
believing that he had been foully dealt with, he set up a wild lamentation and
revealed facts which almost cost him his own life.
He related an
account of the difficulty between Alvah Northcot and the negro to the crowd of excited
men assembled at the coroner's inquest, which they listened to in grim
indignation. He told his listeners how much he regretted young Northcot's hasty
measures with the negro, and that he was apprehensive from the first that the
result would be disastrous. And then he told all that he knew concerning the
murder of the night. He was on his way home from Asola, he said; when he
reached the place where Northcot's body was found his horse shied, calling his
attention to a posse of armed negroes, some fifteen or twenty in number,
concealed in the bushes. He demanded to know what they wanted, and discovered
that they were all tenants of Pelican. They told him they were waiting for
Northcot, and that they were there for the purpose of killing him as soon as he
came in sight. The men told him, further, they had organized a society for the
purpose of establishing negro supremacy throughout the State. They knew he was
their friend, they said, and he should have their protection; but that they
were resolved to wipe out every white man, henceforth, who did not treat them
with the same consideration that he did.
Appler said
he remonstrated with the men, and finally gained their promise to postpone
vengeance upon Northcot until he could have a chance to talk to him, and then,
feeling entirely assured, he went home.
" I told
them, ' said Appler, his distress at the loss of his son blinding him to the
storm of resentment that was gathering in the breasts of his listeners, "
that I was sure that Alvah meant no disrespect to themselves, and that when he
discovered that his horse had been abused he had acted in a moment of passion,
and I urged them to delay proceedings and give me a chance to talk to him and
persuade him to make suitable amendment."
The crowd who
gathered around Appler listened to his story with seeming patience until he
made this last assertion, and at this juncture a man named Barkers, no longer
able to contain his wrath, evidenced the prevailing sentiment by springing upon
him like a beast of prey.
"
Merciful God! " cried Barker, clutching the Northerner's throat. "Do
you dare tell us that you spoke to niggers about a white man's apologizing for
protecting his individual property from depredations?"
An ominous
murmur arose from the assemblage, that Cap Barringer was quick to see and
suppress. He separated Barker from Appler, and the latter was allowed to regain
his breath. For the first time the old man seemed to realize the position he
was in. He looked from one to the other of the excited men surrounding him,
and began pleading for indulgence with every argument he could bring to bear in
his favor.
Barker broke
away from the men who were detaining him, and turned to the crowd.
"Do you
restrain me from strangling that viper!" he protested passionately.
"Is it not his accursed fault that Alvah Northcot is lying here before
you, shot from ambush, in the night? Can you blame a nigger for anything he may
do, when he has such a hell-fiend for a mater as that reprobate there before
you? Who is Alvah Northcot's murderer — who, I ask you, if not the man who,
knowing of his danger, slunk off to bed like a hound and left an innocent man
to go blindly into a trap that awaited him? If Major Appler was not in sympathy
with the negroes he has so materially aided in demoralizing, why did he not
hurry back to Asola and gather men to save Northcot's life? Even if he did not
want negro supremacy defeated, why did he not at least warn Northcot of the
danger he was in? Who is Northcot's murderer?"
Major Appler
quailed beneath the wrathful eyes bent upon him. He made one more protest with
his white lips.
"How
could I, gentlemen — how could I have returned to Asola, with twenty shot-guns
pointed at me?"
" Was
the bayou road the only way to reach Asola?" demanded Barker relentlessly.
"Is not the road through the fields near the railroad even three miles
shorter? "
"Gentlemen,
I beseech you to hear me," Appler pleaded. " Surely none of you can
believe that I did not have faith in the promise I had won from the men. Had I
for a moment doubted them, I would have made an effort to warn Alvah. My own
child was with him, and you must surely believe that I would not have left him
to a fate so terrible had I suspected that it awaited him. Where is
Felix?" he cried, wringing his hands. "Is no one going to help me
find my poor boy's body? "
Public
sentiment swayed slightly in sympathy with the bereaved father, and Captain
Barringer, quick to take advantage of it, caught Appler by the arm and
whispered: " They are going now to look for Felix. The train goes through
in an hour. You had better hurry. I can't promise to protect you. You see what
you have done; you see how they feel."
Appler
groaned. "Captain, I can't leave my boy — " Barringer shrugged his
shoulders. " Leave the boy to me. Everybody likes Felix."
Before Appler
was allowed to go the sheriff compelled him to make a list of the negroes who
constituted the gang assembled for the purpose of killing Northcot, and as the
greater part of the crowd dispersed to seek the missing boy, Appler followed
Cap Barringer's advice, and escaped the people's vengeance while he could.
It was not
long before Felix was found. Barker detected hoof-prints from the road leading
across the freshly plowed fields, and following these into the woods, the boy
was found hiding among the trees, still frightened almost out of his senses. He
was unhurt, except for a few scratches he had given himself in his flight
through the woods.
CHAPTER XXVII
By sun down
nearly all of the men who had been searching for the negroes implicated in
Northcot's murder had returned to Asola or their homes in the adjacent
villages or plantations, and eight or ten negroes had been captured during the
day and landed in jail; but still the ring-leaders, the organizers, of the
society or clique had not been found, and the sheriff, his deputies, Barker
and several other men as determined as the latter upon checking anarchy were
still out, nor did they return until it grew so dark in the woods that a negro
could not have been seen if he had been come upon.
Throughout
the day a portentous muttering echoed from mouth to mouth among the thoroughly
incensed citizens, that made Captain Barringer shudder. As soon as he returned to
Asola, worn as he was with hunger and fatigue, he went immediately to the
stout brick jail to see that it was secure.
The jailor,
an immense black negro, strong enough to throttle an ox, who had served in that
capacity for years, was on duty and went with Captain Barringer upon his rounds
of inspection.
The negroes
arrested and brought in during the day were quiet, but they were terribly
frightened. They too, had heard.
Captain
Barringer saw the jailor lock and bar the place properly, and taking the keys
from his hand, he carried them home with him.
Mrs.
Barringer's anxiety during the day had been so great that she was almost
prostrated with nervousness, and when at last her husband returned, the delight
of seeing him, again at home and unharmed very nearly caused her to give way to
the hysterics that had threatened her all day. She was a frail looking little
woman, really stronger than her appearance indicated, with a capacity for
loving her pertly, genial husband far more in keeping with his size than her
own.
She had a
tempting supper awaiting the tired sheriff and he lost no time in disposing of
it. In seeking the rest he desired so keenly, Captain Barringer could not
sleep, as much as be longed to do so. He tried to lie quietly, for every time he
moved, however cautiously, he could see a pair of wide blue eyes as far from
slumber as were his own. At last though, he dozed and was drifting into
blissful oblivion when the bell on his front door pealed violently and he
started up to find the blue eyes bending above him, not having yet been closed.
"The
keys — oh, darling, they've come for the keys; what shall we do — what shall we
do! " As Mrs. Barringer spoke she jumped out of bed and catching up the
keys from where they lay on the mantel-piece, she clutched them to her bosom in
desperate resolution.
Barringer
kissed his wife tenderly and begged her to be calm. The bell rang again as he
hurried into his clothes, and as the third sharp peal echoed through the house,
he opened the front door and stepped upon the gallery. As Captain Barringer
confronted the group of determined men standing about the steps, Mr. Barker
stepped nearer and spoke: “Captain, I have to trouble you for the jail keys, if
you please."
Mr. Barker,
you know that you are asking more of me than it is in my power to grant,"
Barringer said, firmly.
"Now,
look here, Barringer, it ain't any use for you to talk like this," said
Barker, coaxingly. " We were afraid you would want to act this way. Where
are the keys?"
" They
are in my room."
" Then
we must get them."
"Gentlemen,"
began the sheriff, closing the door behind him and moving further out among
them, " this is a case of about thirty to one, and I know as well as you
do that resistance on my part will be unavailing; but I tell you plainly that
to pass through that door you must step over my prostrate body, and when you
have done that you will still have to lay violent hands upon a defenseless
woman before the keys are reached. I have already said all that I can to turn
you from this course. I have pleaded, I have reasoned, — I have used every
argument in my power to dissuade you from committing this crime. You
protest," he interposed, listening to the murmur that surged through the
crowd, " but it is a crime, and one that each of you must answer for in a
hereafter. You are right when you say that Alvah Northcot's murder must be
avenged. It must — and it shall be; but let the law — that law by which we
white men should be the first to abide — take its course. I beg you once more to
go quietly to your homes, and do nothing in this case, further than help me
find the ring-leaders of the gang still at large. I do not want to shed any
man's blood — you see I am entirely unarmed, — but you can not get the keys as
long as I am alive."
There was a
growl of rebellious protest in the crowd, followed by Barker's irritable
assertion: “You know well enough, Barringer, that there's not a man among us
who would be willing to hurt you or annoy your wife. What you say about the law
and the nigger is all well enough when it is handled as a theory, but when it
comes to the nigger himself it's another thing. You may as well expect to
control a child by law. No, sir; we know what it is our duty to do, and we are
here to do it. We are here not so much to avenge poor Northcot's assassination,
as we are to teach the niggers a lesson about nigger rule that they won't be
likely to forget as long as this generation lives. As long as they are fools
enough to be influenced by such dollar-worshipping scoundrels as Appler, they
must bear the consequences. The sooner they learn that nigger supremacy can
never be obtained until the last drop of white man's blood is spilled, the
better it will he for them. “Come now, Captain," he added, again using
persuasion, "give us the keys. We don't want to hurt you, and we don't
want to damage the jail and put the parish to the expense of repairs."
" As to
that, Mr. Barker, I have nothing to say. If the jail is not strong enough to hold
the parish prisoners in and keep a mob out, it is our misfortune. I realize
that I am unable to stay your hand if you are bent upon destruction of life and
property. Two-thirds of the men of Asola and neighborhood are here among you,
and there are not enough men left to assist me in resisting you, even had I
time here at midnight to assemble them for the purpose." Captain Barringer
turned once more to the mob and pleaded as he had earlier in the day: "
For God's sake, be temperate, — leave the punishment of these men to the hand
of the law
" Hand
of the law be — ! " exclaimed Barker, thoroughly aroused by what he
considered the sheriff's pigheaded stubbornness. "Captain Barringer, I ask
you once more to give us the keys."
" Mr.
Barker, I have told you upon what conditions only you can get the keys."
Barker
wheeled around and with a muttered imprecation, which was echoed upon every
side, walked out of the yard, followed by the men, who were one with him in
sentiment.
The crowd
surged through the gate after him, and without question proceeded in a body, to
their favorite resort. Many of them had been there too often already since
dusk.
It was twelve
o'clock when the crowd filed into the saloon, and the sleepy bar-keeper sprang
up with interest.
" What
news, boys? " he asked, eagerly.
Some one told
him of the interview with Captain Barringer, as he put whiskey and glasses upon
the counter. Whiskey and words flowed freely, and one after another of the men
turned to Barker for his opinion.
Barker had
been saying little. After taking one drink, he refused to swallow another. He
stood leaning against the counter, listening to the hot-headed threats that
rapidly chased each other through the conversation. Some one addressed him.
" Eh,
Barker," the voice said, mockingly. "As Barringer says, better leave
these devils to the hand of the law, eh? "
Barker, never
for a moment having relinquished his design, fired at the words and declaimed:
"Gentlemen, I ask you what is the hand of the law? What is it but a piece
of clumsy machinery, pulled by politics on one side and money on the
other? What has the so-called hand of
the law done in the cases of robbery and murder that have made our parish and
the counties across the river flow with blood in the past eight months? What
has the law done to the robbers who would have murdered old man Chaflin? What,
I demand, has that mighty power done to avenge the assassination of Sidney
Carroll and Vincent Minor? And now that we have caught the devils red-handed in
their crimes, we must turn the matter over to the mighty strength of the
all-just law! What does a nigger care for law in any of its forms? What respect
has he for any ethics that he cannot see wreaking immediate punishment upon a
transgressor? Most of you have heard of the hanging of Lige Bowen, for the
murder of his wife, at Hudson's Landing some ten years ago. I was there. When
Bowen ripped his wife’s heart out, and was confronted by her brothers and the
friends who watched her and her child together die a lingering death of agony,
he fled from the just vengeance of his own race and threw himself upon the
mercy of the law. I saw him the day he was hidden in jail from the niggers, who
would have killed him like the reptile that he was, and I never saw more abject
terror on a human face. I thought he would die of fright. His bright yellow
skin looked green in its pallor, and the blood that should have been in his
lips had gone to his eyes in clotted veins. The law extended its hand and
shielded him from being cut to shreds by his wife's brothers. The sheriff
compassionately locked him in jail to await his trial and in the peaceful
seclusion of the Oakport jail his ‘reformation' began. His preacher and
religious friend, crowded to see him. He was prayed for and wept over. In the
year of indolence he had, Christ's promises to the repentant sinner were
chanted so continuously in his ears that by the time the hour came for paying
the penalty of his deed, he had so far recovered from fear and regret of his
crime, if he ever felt any, that he looked upon himself as a martyr — a second
Daniel.”
" I saw
him the morning he was hanged, and, by George, he had worked himself, into such
a state of religious exaltation at the thought-of stepping immediately into the
presence of his God — whom he swore had come in person to visit him the night
before — that he could scarcely wait for the appointed moment to come. Yes,
sir; he went to that gallows with as firm a step and as proud a bearing as ever
a king went to his coronation, and there was a look in his face that showed the
ecstasy be was in. The hundreds of niggers crowded around the jail steps, as he
came out, all saw that look as well as I, and I venture to say there was not a
religious fanatic there but who would gladly have exchanged places with him if
he would have suffered it. He paused at the head of the steps and swept his
eyes across the multitude before him, and in a voice that rang like a clarion
to the farthest limits of the crowd, he shouted: `Good-bye, children of God follow
me!' Follow him! — and I'll be — if they haven't been doing it ever
since!"
Barker paused
for breath and then went on with flashing eyes: "Gentlemen, there isn't a
man among you but know a nigger as he knows an open book — knows his total
depravity and knows his few good points. You know that he is a creature of
emotions and superstition. His chief delight, next to gambling, is in working
himself into a state of religious frenzy. He is a consummate coward and can
resist stealing no better than a cat can. He can give a Turk a fair start and
then beat him lying and cheating. What Captain Barringer and Mr. Barrett said
today about amending the laws to fit the exigency of such cases is of course a
capital idea and one that should be acted upon without delay; but gentlemen, we
are not here for the purpose of legislating tonight nor here to discuss the
negroes' past nor his future. We are here to give the niggers such an object
lesson in negro insurrection as will not be forgotten in many a day. '
A shout of
assent interrupted the speaker's rapidly flowing words, and when it subsided
Barker went on, his firm voice ringing with contagious patriotism: "Has it
come to that point where a white man dare not try to defend his personal
property? Has it come to the pass where a man dare not venture along a public
road at night without a bulletproof armor for himself and beast? Can't a man
keep an honest store on his place without a regiment of police to protect him
from being robbed and assassinated as soon as it is dark? Gentlemen, have we
not met with enough outrages within the last few months to make a man either a
driveling coward or else desperate enough to wipe out the pestilence at any
cost? What is to become of ourselves, of our homes, if we yield in this — we, a
handful of white men amid thousands of half savage negroes?"
Barker paused
once more and when he spoke again excitement had left his manner, and his words
came with a calmness and clearness that suggested polished steel.
“Gentlemen, I
ask you one last question. Answer it to suit yourselves. Who is there here, in
this crowd, willing to go with me and give these fiends the punishment they
deserve?"
There was not
a dissenting voice or gesture, not one. Next morning three ghastly forms hung
from the upper rear gallery of the court-house and vengeance was begun.
All day long
men searched the plantations and woods adjoining Pelican for the leaders of the
organization but with no success. Blood-hounds were telegraphed for and set
upon the track of the fugitives, but when night came nothing had been achieved,
yet the baffled mob was as determined as ever.
The miserable
wretches in jail looked upon the last gleam of the setting sun, shooting its
parting rays through the grating of the door, with terror that amounted to
despair.
The lamps
were lighted and the unhappy victims of misguided ambition huddled together in
the cage, listening for any foot-fall upon the stair that might herald their
doom. With each gliding moment, their misery became more acute. The jailor was
with them trying to cheer them with his presence, while inwardly he quaked and
started covertly at every sound. He had been ordered by Captain Barringer to
remain with the prisoners all night and he was trying to do his duty, but the
temptation to fly from the scene he dreaded was almost more than he could
withstand. He had almost made up his mind to go to the sheriff and give up his
office as jailor or be released from spending the night at his post, when his
delayed plans were shattered by the sound of advancing foot-steps.
The outer
door that had been broken down by the mob the previous night still lay in
ruins, and the party of men now approaching entered without opposition.
As the men
entered, the jailor crouched behind a cell door and the prisoners, one and all,
groveled upon their knees, screaming for mercy. The attitude of the wretched
creatures, so pathetic and yet so nearly grotesque, together with the
ignominious flight of their giant protector, seemed to strike all of the white
men at once in the same light, and a burst of laughter vibrated against the
stilled walls.
"Get up
from there, you miserable fool! " said one of the men, shoving the nearest
prostrate negro with his foot. "Get up, I say. What mercy do you deserve?
What mercy did you show to Alvah Northcot when you stood by and saw him shot.
Get up. We are here to keep you from getting your just deserts from the hands
of the lynchers and not to send you to the devil where you belong."
The speaker
was Jules Durieux."
When Captain
Barringer wrote Mr. Barrett asking him to send what men he could to help him
guard the prisoners from the mob until danger was past, Jules, talking to Mr.
Barrett at the time that the note was received, instantly volunteered his
services, and he and two others from Sigma rode out to Asola together, while
Mr. Barrett went with the crowd to further search the woods along the river.
There were
ten or twelve men who went to the jail, and these sat there passing the time as
best they could until daylight. For two nights Jules stayed and then, the
hunted negroes still being at large, he went back to his work and some one else
took his place. He was tired out when he reached Englehart after his second
watch at the jail and was eager to get to bed and to sleep, but Wheeler was
anxious to hear the news and stopped him to talk.
" By the
way, Jules, what do you suppose Martha Coleman is buying so much extra
provisions for, the last few days?'
" Why, I
don't know," laughed Jules, " unless she is killing the fatted calf
for the prodigal. Burrill's gone back to her since Ella Green died. The darkies
tell it on Burrill that he is afraid to stay in his house alone since the girl
died there, and has returned to Martha for protection."
Wheeler
laughed. " What struck me as being singular was that she paid cash for
what she got."
"Oh,
well," yawned Jules, " I suppose Burrill's been lucky at craps again.
What did she get?"
" Well,
salmon, sardines, dried apples, canned peaches, crackers, and such things; besides
flour and ham. She got so much of each was what made me curious about it."
Jules made
some trivial remark, and hurried off to bed, where he slept in blessed oblivion
of his sore heart, of Edward Allison, the negro uprising, lynchers, and every
other earthly thing, for two hours.
When Louis
came to awaken Durieux for dinner, he told him that a certain one of the
tenants had been waiting for some time, and seemed very anxious to talk to him,
but that Mr. Wheeler would not allow him to be awakened.
"All
right, Louis," said Durieux, throwing cool water over his sleepy face.
" Tell him I'll be out directly."
"Mr.
Juro," a voice without called tentatively, "I'd rather come in there,
sir, ef you don't mind."
" All
right, Jake," said Durieux, recognizing the voice. He went to the mirror
and commenced brushing his hair. The darkey entered, and shut the door
carefully behind him. It is so altogether out of a negro's line of conduct to
close a door, that Durieux noticed the act instantly, and moved his head
slightly, so that he could see the negro's reflection in the glass before him,
and there he carefully studied the man's troubled features as he stood behind
him, unconscious of the scrutiny he was subjected to.
Jules put on
his collar and waited for the man to speak, watching him in the glass as he
buttoned it. Turning around abruptly, he demanded: "Well?"
The negro
jumped as if he had been shot, and a look of fear masked his face. Durieux tied
his cravat and said naturally: " Well, Jake, what can I do for you?"
The darkey
showed so much relief that Jules almost laughed aloud.
"Mr.
Juro," began Jake, choosing the darkey's usual form of asking a delicate
question, "dey ain't offerin' no reward for de capture of Mr. Northcot's
murderers, is dey?"
Yes "
The darkey
shifted uneasily,
"Mr.
Juro, if a man knowed dem niggers ought to be hung for dey meanness, an' was to
tell where dey was at, would dey pay him de money 'thout lettin' any of de
colored people know who 'twas give 'em away ? "
"They
`pintedly' would," Durieux declared emphatically. Then he adroitly added:
" Jake, if you happen to know of anybody who has an idea where these
rascals are, you tell them I answer for it, if they will give us the desired
information, the money shall be paid over to the man who earns it, and nobody,
white or black, shall know who gets the reward. You understand? "
Jake drew
near the chair where Durieux had thrown himself, and leaning over, he whispered
cautiously: " I knows where dem niggers is at. Dey's at Marthy Coleman's.
One of 'em is her brother on her pa's side; an' dey's fixin' to cross de river
tonight in a skiff."
" Is it
possible ! Those niggers concealed on Englehart ! Jake, you must carry a letter
to Mr. Barrett as soon as I write it. You need not be afraid," he added as
he saw the perplexity in the man's face. "You are simply to take a sealed
letter to Mr. Barrett, and you will not be supposed to know what's in it. Be
sure that the note is put into his hand, and then your work will be done. You
can go anywhere you like then."
Durieux and
Wheeler sat upon their horses in the shadow of the trees, waiting impatiently.
It was growing late, and Mr. Barrett had not yet arrived. They did not think it
probable that the negroes would attempt to go out to the river as long as there
was a chance that white people might be encountered on the road. The moon, now
three days old, was bright, bright enough to light the open fields too well for
egress by that way to the river, and a skiff could not pass across the river
without possible detection.
At last
Durieux descried a body of horsemen advancing, and Wheeler and he rode forth to
meet them.
"You are
late," he commented as soon as he drew near.
"
Yes," Mr. Barrett returned. " Early this afternoon Mr. Barker and his
men came through Sigma, saying that the negroes were reported to have gone
through Willowburn intending to cross the river near there; so we joined them
and rode down the river, only to find that we were misled. I was there when
Jake brought me your note. How did you discover that they were on
Englehart?"
Durieux
evaded the question. " The search will not be fruitless here. We are
certain of finding them now, I think."
"Have
they been caught?" Mr. Barrett asked eagerly, misinterpreting Durieux'
confidential manner:
"No.
There were only two of us, you see, so we thought best to wait. We ought to
begin the search at once, however, now that you are here.'
He turned and
led the way, followed by the crowd, — a party of nearly thirty, — which
consisted of every type of white man in the parish. There were Mr. Barrett and
his employees, and Mr. Hays, besides several others who were bitterly opposed
to mob law in any of its forms, and whose chief motive in joining the hunt for
the negroes was to prevent violence, if it lay in the power of man to do so
without shedding a friend's blood; Mr. Barker, and men like him, who believed
that malignant diseases required heroic treatment; and the type represented by
Mr. Henderson, who asserted that when negroes took their own lives in their
hands, they alone were responsible for the result; and, last, that class ever
ready for adventure, believing that might is right, and that a man is not a man
without unlimited license, primarily, and an internal capacity for whiskey that
allowed as much absorption of the beverage, without flooring him, as his taste
demanded. This last type, fortunately, was in the minority; yet it was there,
in force sufficient to incite the more impulsive men to acts of haste that
better judgment in cooler moments would condemn.
The crowd
moved toward the back part of Englehart, following Durieux and Wheeler as
silently as possible. When Martha Coleman's house was in sight, five or six of the
men dismounted and moved on cautiously, leaving their horses to the care of the
rest.
Durieux
knocked on the door of the cabin, and after some delay it was opened by Martha
herself. She peered into the night, and started violently when she saw the group
of white men on her gallery.
Durieux, Mr.
Barrett, and Barker pushed by the woman and entered the house.
"
Martha, where are the men? "
" La,
Mr. Durieux, what men is you talkin' about? " Martha stammered, staring at
the three men with dilated eyes.
" The
men you are helping to hide," said Durieux, calmly; " the men who
have been here since last night; the man who left his shoes there by the
chair."
The woman had
partially regained her self-possession, and answered sullenly, casting a quick
furtive glance at the forgotten shoes.
" They
ain't no men been here."
"Where
is Burrill?"
"I don't
know where Burrill's at. He don't stay around me much; everybody knows
that."
The woman
bristled with stubborn defiance, and Barker was exasperated. Two or three other
men had come into the cabin, and turning to one of these, Barker commanded:
" Bring me one of the ropes; this woman's got to be strung up to the
rafters to make her remember things."
Martha
watched the men bring in the rope, and falling upon her knees, she implored:
" For God's sake don't kill me! I ain't to blame for nothin' God knows I
ain't."
As Barker
made a pretense of putting the rope around the woman's neck, she screamed in a
maddened paroxysm of terror, and bounding to her feet, she would have escaped
if the men near the door had not caught her. She stared about her wildly, and
Durieux, fearing to frighten her too much, went up to her and spoke
compassionately: "Tell me where the men are," he said decisively,
"and no one shall hurt you."
The woman
trembled piteously, and clutched Durieux' arm, feeling sheltered by his
sympathy. She leaned over and whispered hoarsely: "Look in de cotton
house."
The men
released her, and she sank into a limp heap upon & floor, sick with fear.
The mob outside,
in the meanwhile, had surrounded the house and had hitched some of the horses
to the rough walls of the little cotton-house standing a few paces back. Hays
and two other men were leaning against the door of the cotton-house, when
Durieux went up to him and whispered: " She says they are in here."
"What!
in here?" cried Hays, wheeling around; "I don't believe a word of
it!" With that he jerked the door open and jumped into the room. The
aperture was about two feet above the ground, without steps. When he and
several who followed him had entered the small apartment and looked about them
with the aid of a match some one lighted, they found it entirely empty.
There was a
loft, and Hays sprang from the floor through the opening, using the rough logs
of the wall to assist him in mounting. The moon was shining dimly through the
open gable end, and Hays had hardly leaped into the loft before he found
himself surrounded by the desperate, hunted negroes.
Grabbing the
nearest, he drew his pistol and shouted, "They are here!"
It took but a
few moments to get the negroes down from the loft, but when all but one had
descended, he held back reluctantly.
" Go
on," said Durieux.
"Let me
git my hat," he retorted doggedly.
"Go on,
I tell you. I'll bring your hat.' Durieux gathered the hats that lay scattered
about the floor and climbed down as he had ascended aided by the log wall. When
he reached the ground, the negroes were in the midst of a group of white men
and their hands were being securely bound. In the dim light Durieux had to look
closely to distinguish the features before him. The first face that he gazed
into made him start back in amazement.
"Burrill
Coleman!" he cried. "In heaven's name, what are you doing in
this?"
Coleman
laughed a short, hard laugh. He returned Durieux' gaze calmly. "I'll take
my hat, boss, if you please."
Jules, too
confused by his surprise to further question the negro, placed the hat upon his
head and moved on toward the other helpless captives. At the final success in
securing the leaders of the gang; the mob was working itself into a condition
bordering upon madness, and as Durieux listened to the passionate words that
were hurled back and forth like red hot missiles, he shuddered and his heart
grew heavier within him.
"These
are the niggers!" Barker was almost screaming in his excitement.
"These are the fellows we want. Buck Williams and Jeff. Our job's 'most
done now, boys!"
Durieux had
come to the last of the negroes and he looked about him in consternation. He
realized that there were only four negroes and five hats.
The mob
shouted and swore. " We've got 'em, have we? Got 'em at last! String 'em
up to the first tree! 'Twon't take long to send 'em to the country where they
can't form secret societies!"
The threats
would not be idle. Durieux crushed the two old hats he held together and
pressed both upon the last negro's head.
When the
white men, headed by Hays, rushed into the cotton-house, fired with excitement
and incredulity, they were entirely at the mercy of the negroes, and Hays at
last, when the prisoners were secure, stopped to consider the danger he had
been in. The negroes seemed unarmed, and he asked, wonderingly: "Where are
your shot-guns?"
" We
lost 'em," growled Jeff
"How was
that " demanded Barker, incredulously.
" You
all set the hounds on us an' we throwed 'em into de slough an' climbed
trees."
" Well
I'll be doggoned! You say the blood hounds were on your trail? "
Jeff giggled.
" They sho was. They had us but you all thought they didn't know they
business, an' called 'em off."
Burrill
Coleman was silent and alert. With closed lips he watched every movement of his
captors, though not a sound escaped him. The other three talked willingly and
answered the questions put to them with a coolness that made Durieux watch them
in mute amazement. The mob had remounted and with the prisoners on foot, the
crowd moved on, gaining the roadway leading through the fields toward the
river.
Buck Williams
was walking between Mr. Hays and Durieux and presently, lifting an unconcerned
countenance to the latter, he asked: " Boss, is you got any tobacco? I's
most dead for a good thaw. I ain't had none since Sunday."
Durieux shook
his head. " No, I have none."
The darkey
then turned to Hays with his request and Hays, who used it, felt in a pocket
and drawing out a piece of a plug, cut off some with his knife and placed it
upon the scoundrel's outstretched tongue.
The night was
wearing away. One and another of the roosters in the negroes' chicken houses,
dotting the fields all over the place, settled down after the midnight signal
had been throated from one side of the plantation, on and on, and back again.
Now and then
a cur in the distance yelped, but silence shrouded the world save for the
sighing of the wind in the distant trees and the tramp of the horses' feet upon
the hard road. Occasionally one of the riders spoke to another in a low tone,
but the uproar of excitement was smoldering and seemingly extinct. A negro
burying ground had come in sight and voices seemed more stilled than ever. The
old graves, weed grown and sunken, were overhung by a group of enormous pecans
and cottonwoods from whose gaunt limbs the long grey moss swayed with a soft
"swish" as though to warn the passing mob from the dismal retreats it
overhung.
Barker drew
his horse up violently beneath the branches of a pecan tree reaching far across
the road and in his ringing deep-chested voice, he demanded: " Where are
we taking these accursed devils? What better place than this can we find for
ending their abominable lives?"
A chorus of
assent went up from the crowd and the tempest of excitement once more burst
forth.
Like a flash
Mr. Barrett spurred from his position in the rear of the procession, and
wheeling his horse he faced the mob and began: "Gentlemen, I realize the
utter uselessness of my trying to turn you from your present purpose. For the
last three days everything that could be said has been urged against this hasty
method of punishment. To argue with you further would be but a waste of breath.
I have urged everything I could to persuade you to let the men have a trial and
be dealt with by the officers of the law. You all know how emphatically I
disapprove of lynching. No man living more earnestly desires to stop the
wholesale crimes that have afflicted us within the last year than I — no man
more willingly will lend his aid toward punishing Alvah Northcot's assassins
than I, nor is any one more determined to put down the negro rebellion which
has so recently arisen in our midst; but, gentlemen, I am determined to take
no part in so-called mob law. We are men enough, it is to be hoped, to make
laws and abide by them; the laws are in the white man's hands and it is his
duty to keep them there, but it is none the less his duty to be the first to
abide by these laws which his state has made. There is little difference
between lynching and cold blooded murder, and I beg you, if you cannot be
turned from your purpose of hanging these negroes tonight, that you will at least
not murder them within the limits of my property."
The muttering
of anger that arose was cut short by Mr. Hays riding up to Mr. Barrett's side.
He was determined not to witness the intended crime wherever it might be
committed, and he spoke decisively; " Gentlemen, Mr. Barrett is right.
Lynching is a sin before God, and I beseech you not to let your haste and
excitement cause you to do that which in your calmer moments will fill you with
remorse. At all events," he went on, growing angry with the hissing and
epithets of derision that greeted his words, " Barrett has a right to his
own plantation and may say what shall be done upon it. These men don't live
here — their homes are fifteen miles from here. Their wives should at least be
allowed the privilege of giving their bodies proper burial."
" Here,
here," some young upstart in the crowd cried. " That won't go!
Burrill Coleman does live on this place! "
"I am in
hopes," said Mr. Barrett gravely, "that Burrill can satisfactorily explain
his connection with this affair. Jeff Douglas, as is well known, is a connection
of Coleman's wife. Isn't that so, Jeff?"
" She
claims to be," the darkey replied indifferently. " A half sister or
something of that kind."
Barker turned
abruptly upon Burrill. " Can you explain your connection with this gang of
murderers?"
Buck Williams
screwed his ugly face into a grin. " I should smile," he muttered.
Burrill stood
silently staring at the ground, and he went on jeeringly, raising his voice.
" Go ahead, Mr. Coleman. Explain these gent'men how it comes you is seen
in sich undesirable comp'ny. Speak up for youseff — I knows you kin do it — an'
maybe we won't all go to heaven by same train."
Burrill
lifted his head and looked at his tormentor coldly.
Wheeler rode
up to Durieux and questioned anxiously: "Jules, what can this mean? Surely
— "
He broke off
and listened again. Buck returned Burrill's gaze for a moment, then shifted
uneasily. The two other captives laughed, and the older taunted with malicious
glee.
" Got
you under his thumb yet, ain't he, Buck?'
Coleman
turned upon him and whispered fiercely " Fool! If you are goin' to hang,
why don't you do like a man?
Barker again
confronted Burrill. Why did these men come to you as soon as they were in
trouble? Ah. Burrill, I am inclined to believe that when the Mississippians
sent for you, they had just cause doin it.'
"Mr.
Barker," said Burrill, with his habitual politeness, " nobody can't
prove that I ever done anything wrong. Ask Mr. Durieux and Mr. Wheeler. They
knows I'm a hard-workin' man. I stays at home attendin' to my business year in
an' year out. I owns up, I ought not to be seen in no such company; but, as Mr.
Barrett says, Jeff's my wife's brother, and it ain't but natural but what I'd
try to help him save his life
While Coleman
spoke the other three negroes stood looking at him with mingled surprise and
admiration and when he finished, Buck threw back his head a laughed
uproariously.
" What
we most want to know," cried some one the hotheads, impatient at the
delay, "is, have we the leader of the Pelican gang? "
" Yes,
yes! That's what we want to know."
The crowd
surged back and forth, and Barker turned again to Coleman.
"I
suppose, then," he said, "you know nothing of the society organized
on Pelican for the purpose of killing out the white men? "
" No
sir," he returned, stoutly, " I know nothing of it."
Jeff Douglass
uttered a long, low whistle, and the other two exchanged significant glances.
Buck opened his mouth to speak, but Coleman turned his glittering black eyes
upon him, and he slunk back in silence.
Again the
crowd moved restlessly.
" Are we
sure we've got the ringleader? "
"I think
we have," said Barker. " Major Appler told me that Buck Williams and
Jeff Douglass were the men he was talking to the night of the murder." He
turned here to Buck and put the direct question, " Are you the leader of
the gang, Buck? "
"No
sir," the man answered, without a moment's hesitation.
"Jeff,
are you?"
" No
sir."
Barker then
asked the young negro, who had until then said nothing: "Are you?"
Buck and Jeff
laughed at the idea, and even Coleman smiled grimly.
" La,
Mr. Barker, Si ain't got sense enough to lead a horse to water, much less lead
a gang of men."
Durieux was
troubled. He wondered if he had not made a mistake in concealing the fact that
there was another man hidden somewhere in the cotton house. He dismounted, and
handing the bridle to Wheeler, he went behind Buck, and while he ostensibly tied
his hands more securely, he whispered: " Who was the other man in the
cotton house?"
Buck started.
" Lord, boss, how did you know there was another one? "
" Don't
you know that you have two hats on your head? I couldn't hide it any other way while
they were watching me, and I didn't want any more niggers lynched than I could
help."
"He
ain't nobody in perticular, sir, — just a fellow like Si, who joined the gang
becaze he didn't know no difference."
Durieux could
not linger longer without attracting attention. He went back, and stood leaning
against his horse.
The hot-heads
were clamorous. " We must have the leader," they cried.
"
Yes," Barker acquiesced, with equal determination; " we must have the
leader, if we have to hang every nigger in north Louisiana to get him! "
Barker's
words were met with a shout of applause that made the woods echo.
"Make
yourselves easy, gent'men, you is got the leader."
Barker stared
at Buck Williams angrily. " What do you mean?" he thundered,
aggravated by the darkey's calmness. " Have you not each denied it?"
" Is you
asked Burrill Coleman who is the leader? " asked Buck, stolidly.
"Burrill Coleman!" exclaimed Wheeler
and Durieux in a breath. " Why, man — "
"
Burrill Coleman, are you the leader? "
" No,
Mr. Barker, I am not I"
“Burrill, you
lie!" shouted Buck, in a fury:
Coleman
turned his cold, glittering eyes upon his accuser again. " I do not lie. I
am not the leader."
" Hoo!
" muttered Williams; " I see. What' you is and what you was is different,
I reckon."
Coleman was
silent. His finely proportioned figure, with every nerve on duty to support it
against the terrible doom that awaited it, looked almost noble in the dusky
moonlight. His intelligent countenance was calm and tranquil, though there was
a look of weariness about his expressive eyes.
Buck's sneer
was not lost upon the crowd. " Make Buck Williams tell what he
knows," a voice said, above the murmur of interest.
Barker acted
upon the suggestion. " Was Burrill Coleman leader of the Pelican
rebellion? "
" Mr.
Barker," Buck began, slowly. He paused, and when he spoke again there was
a tremor in his voice. "I know my time is come, and they ain't no use of
me to lie just before goin' to the judgment seat of God." He tried to
clear his voice, and went on " It ain't fair to give another man away, an'
I wouldn't do it ef it wasn't to save some other po' fool nigger from goin' to
the devil with a rope 'round his neck. We's been terribly fooled by one
nigger, who come along an' 'swaded us we could boss the white men. The man what
was leadin' us done so many smart things, an' kept hisself so clear of
'spicion, we got to believe he could do anything he set to do. It 'peared
mighty wonderful to us, how he could set down in his cabin an' work the wires
to go his way over in Mississippi as easy as here in Willowburne. May be, ef we
had a'talked to him about it first, we never would a' been here now. He kept
a'tellin' us to never do nothin' without askin' him about it first."
The silence
was so profound when Buck stopped speaking that the men scarcely seemed to be
breathing. At last Mr. Barrett found his voice.
" Do you
mean to say," he questioned, " that Burrill Coleman was your leader,
and that he planned the atrocious crimes that have made our country horrible
within the past year?
" Yes,
sir; all but killin' Mr. Northcot. He never worked that, an' that's why we's
here tonight. 'Twas the man what Mr. Alvah beat — po' Dick, who was hung at the
court-house — what run that piece of business."
" Then
we have the leader? " blurted out Barker, finding his speech.
" Yes,
sir. You don't need to look no further. When you git Burrill, you got the
brains an' the right hand of the whole thing." He shivered. " After
Burrill Coleman's swung out of this world, there won't be none to take his
place."
Mr. Barrett
sat upon his horse like one stunned. Barker swore in his amazement, and every
one else seemed dumbfounded. Barker turned to the other two negroes: "
Boys, is Buck telling the truth?"
" Yes,
sir, he's tellin' the truth! "
Durieux
passed his hand across his forehead. " Good God! " he groaned.
Burrill
looked at him keenly, and his head sank upon his breast. He had been standing
like a granite statue while Buck was talking. After a while he lifted his head
and spoke: " He says ` when Burrill Coleman's gone, there'll be none to
take his place; the brain and right hand will be gone'." Burrill spoke
slowly, meditatively, as though even in his extremity the praise was balm to
his ambition. He glanced around and saw that some men were preparing to put a
rope around his neck. He started back.
"
Wait!" he cried, imperiously. " I ain't ready to go yet — there's
something on my mind; 'taint much, but I want to tell it anyhow. Its bothered me
more than all the other things, somehow. Where is Dr. Allison? He ain't here?
Well, it don't make no difference. A heap of you all believes till yet that Dr.
Allison killed Mr. Sid and Mr. Vincent, but he never did. Dr. Allison's as good
a man as ever lived. He set by Ella day and night and tried his best to save
her life for me, like I begged him. I paid him for stayin' — paid him honest
money what I had worked for, but I couldn't pay him for his goodness to
her." He paused. "I never committed but one murder, and I never got
over that. I told the others how, and they never seemed to mind it. I shot Mr.
Carroll. Me and Buck went there — just us two, 'cause we knew there was a big
lot of money there. We fired, and Mr. Sid fell and Mr. Vincent ran into his room.
We knew there was a gun in there, and we thought he would have the drop on us.
A hand-car was comin', and we thought it was goin' to stop, but it went on
through. I saw Dr. Allison get on his horse and ride off, and I knew he would
be out of our way."
Burrill
Coleman was not prepared for the effect his confession would have upon the
friends of Carroll and Minor who were of the mob that night.
Mr. Barrett,
Durieux, Wheeler, and Hays saw that they were as powerless before that body of
determined men as so many straws upon the bosom of the mighty river. They
turned and rode silently away, each oblivious to the other's presence.
Next morning,
when the sun shone upon the tree nearest where Alvah Northcot's body was found,
its rays fell full across three ghastly objects swinging from its sinless
branches.
CHAPTER XXIX
Durieux and
Mr. Barrett rode side by side for some time, each so buried in thought that
neither was aware who his companion was. There was a group of men ahead of
them, riding silently away from the tragedy they had been unable to avert.
When the road
along the base of the river was reached, the horses turned to the right, toward
Sigma, and Durieux pulled his reins up suddenly and aroused himself from his
reverie. Mr. Barrett looked up as the other came to an abrupt stop.
" Ah,
Jules, won't you come on with me? "
Durieux
replied: "No, thank you, Mr. Barrett, I can't go on to Sigma. Mr. Barrett
— would it be asking too much of you to come back to the place with me? There
is something I particularly wish to talk to you about. I — Don't you think you
could come?"
Mr. Barrett
looked at his watch, and hesitated when he saw how late it was; then he looked
at Jules again, and responding to the earnest insistence so legible in his
manner, he turned his horse's head toward the Englehart store, and together, by
a different route from the one they had just passed over, they returned to the
center of the place.
When they
reached his room, Durieux rebuilt his fire, for it had grown cool, and the
horror of the night's events had chilled him drearily.
As soon as
the wood blazed brightly in the wide fireplace, Jules sank into a chair, and
for a little while his head rested back and his hands hung listlessly by his
side.
Mr. Barrett
bent forward and stretched his hands toward the merry, chattering flames, and
Durieux pulled himself together.
There was a
small round table between the two men, littered with magazines, and illuminated
by the lamp that burned brightly upon it.
Durieux leaned
an arm upon the table, and Mr. Barrett faced him.
"
Yes."
Durieux
cleared his husky voice and went on: "I am glad that he confessed. I am
glad that all doubt of Dr. Allison's honor is at last cleared away. Are not
you?"
" Yes,
Jules; but still — "
"
Well?" said Durieux, petulantly.
" My
boy, why didn't Dr. Allison — " he hesitated again.
Dr. Allison
didn't simply because he couldn't. Mr. Barrett, if Edward Allison had told
where he was that night, you would have blown his brains out."
" I?
Jules, are you mad? Why should I have desired to do such a thing? I heard what
the peddler woman said; she swore that Allison had gone to see a woman in a cabin
on the back part of Lilyditch."
"Yes. He
went to see a woman in a cabin on Lilyditch, and the woman — " Durieux
stopped abruptly.
"The
woman — " repeated his companion.
"Was
Nellie Barrett."
"Good
God! what do you mean? " Mr. Barrett bounded to his feet, and stood
staring at the man before him like one dazed. Durieux returned his gaze firmly.
"I mean,
Mr. Barrett, that Edward Allison had too much honor to use the name of the
woman he loves to shield himself from death or disgrace."
Mr. Barrett sank
into his chair again, and covered his face with his hands. " Merciful God!
" he groaned ; " why have I lived to see this day ? "
Durieux sat
silently watching him. What did it matter if one more heart was crushed and
bleeding?
Mr. Barrett
lifted his head and demanded fiercely: " Durieux, how many people know of
this? "
" The
two lovers, the Syrian, Allen, and I"
Mr. Barrett
moaned: " If the negroes know of it, there is no hope of secrecy."
Mr. Barrett avoided meeting Durieux' eyes. "How did you find this out,
Jules?
" From
Miss Nellie herself."
"What!
did she have the assurance to tell you that she was in the habit of meeting her
lover in a deserted negro cabin ?"
Durieux swore
inwardly. " No, she did not," he answered, tartly. Mr. Barrett looked
at him in surprise. "Did not you tell me — "
" I did
not tell you that she was 'in the habit' of doing anything," Durieux
flashed angrily. Again a slight breath against a woman's honor was raising a
whirlwind of suspicion.
Mr. Barrett
looked vexed, and Jules went on more
l
"I told
you, sir, that Miss Nellie told me that on the night of December 27th, at the
hours between twelve and half past three, she was in the cabin with Dr. Allison.
She sent for him, and he came at her request. You had made him pledge not to
seek her, and so she sought him to tell him that she was going away."
" And
she told you this, when she would not tell it to me?"
"She was
not afraid of me. She was staving for sympathy — for some one to blame her and
know the part she had in her lover's embarrassment. You know, sir, that Miss
Nellie and I have been together a great deal. Ever since she was a child, in
fact, and we are," he added, stroking his handsome mustache to conceal the
bitter curves his lips shaped themselves into, " we are, you know, quite
like ` sisters'."
The older man
was too deeply engrossed in his own pain to notice another's sarcasm. He rested
his tired head upon his hand thoughtfully. "Jules, if the child wanted to
see the fellow that badly, why in the name of heaven didn't she come to
me?" he said, irritably. " Have I ever denied my children anything
that money or trouble could procure?"
The young man
shrugged his shoulders characteristically, and smiled under cover of repairing
the fire. Mr. Barrett took a cigar from his pocket, and began to smoke
violently. After a protracted silence, Durieux spoke with effort: " Now
that Dr. Allison is fully reinstated in public opinion," he began,
stiffly, " you will, I trust, waive all objection to his offering his love
to Miss Nellie."
" No,
sir, I will not!" Mr. Barrett brought his fist down upon the table
vehemently. " My objections to Dr. Allison did not arise from his trouble
at Lauren's Station, but were based upon aversions established prior to that
most unfortunate occurrence."
"Poor
little girl," murmured Durieux, half to himself. He sighed heavily. "
Well," he went on, sadly, " it matters little, I suppose. She is
clearly not long for this world of wickedness and woe."
Mr. Barrett's
elbow rested upon the arm of his chair, and his eyes were covered by his hand.
He was silent for a long time. The little clock on the mantelpiece struck two,
vindictively, and he started. Drawing his handkerchief from his pocket, he blew
his nose carefully, repeatedly, and Durieux, watching him with that same
half-sardonic smile, waited for him to speak. "Jules, has Allison returned
from his visit to his mother?”
" I
believe he has. I think some one said he got back some weeks ago."
Mr. Barrett
arose and pushed his chair back. "Jules I will think of what you say.
Perhaps I may eventually overcome my dislike for him. You can not imagine what
a disappointment Nellie's infatuation for this handsome nobody is to me."
Mr. Barrett sighed heavily. "I had thought, Jules, that some day you would
ask me for my little girl. There is no one to whom I would so willingly give
her as to you."
Durieux
staggered. That Mr. Barrett liked him, trusted him, he knew; but that he would
have given Nellie to him — to a penniless drudge who worked for a salary on a
retired plantation — he had never for a moment imagined. To him, who had hidden
his love for the daughter because he was too proud to encounter the father's
scorn. Cruel, jeering fate, that came to tell him what he had lost!
Durieux stood
staring at the floor, his face averted, his hands clinched behind him. Mr.
Barrett tried to laugh reassuringly, and nervously held out his hand.
" Well,
well, my boy, do not feel remorse because you have failed me in the one thing I
most wanted you to do. Hearts must be perverse, I suppose, as long as the world
lasts, and we will have to bow our necks to the yoke of the inevitable. I will
think — I will take your advice and try to make your two young friends happy.
Nellie shall never have to run off from home again to see her lovers. I shall
write to Allison and tell him that he may at least come to see her in her own
home."
Durieux
clasped his friend's hand as cordially as it was extended. He had gained his
object, and his pale, drawn lips worded his thanks.
Mr. Barrett
kept his word. He wrote to Dr. Allison, and that overjoyed young man lost no
time in replying to the letter in person. He found Mr. Barrett alone in his
office, and there followed a long interview, consisting of questioning and
explanations.
Dr. Allison
was a happy man indeed. The burden of doubt being lifted from his character,
brought him a peace he had not known for months; and this relief, added to the
friendly attitude of the man who had so much power to make or mar his bliss,
made his spirits seem winged and freed from all earthly bondage.
Fortune
seemed suddenly to have only smiles for him. The acme of his professional
ambition had also been gained. An old friend of his father's, a physician
possessed of no small share of fame, had offered to take him into partnership,
as a token of appreciation of the old-time friendship of the father's, and the
young man's intrinsic merits. This prospect seemed particularly glowing, now
that there was a chance of winning Nellie Barrett to share success with him. He
would no longer be separated from his mother and sisters; no longer compelled
to work his way from the very bottom of his profession, but aided in locating
himself halfway up, mounting the remainder by his own endeavor, seemed to add
new zest to the gifts the goddess graciously bestowed.
He had come
back from his old home with the determination to terminate his engagement as
plantation physician as soon as Col. Laurens could find a man to take his place
and then he would return to his native town to begin life all over again, as it
were.
Little did he
expect, when he again set foot on Lauren's dark soil, that a few days more
would result clearing his name of suspicion, and his heart of its weight of denied
love.
Almost three
months had elapsed since he had seen the girl of his truest, fondest affection;
and when Mr. Barrett suggested that they would go to Nellie and tell her that
he had withdrawn his objections to an engagement, the invitation was eagerly
accepted.
Nellie's
surprise at her father's generosity was only exceeded by her happiness. She was
anxious that Mr. Barrett should know how entirely free from blame her lover was
throughout the terrible trial that had so nearly wrecked his life, and
volunteered to confess her midnight escapade; but Mr. Barrett laughingly waved
her off, and told her that he knew all.
Father,"
she cried, "how did you hear? Dr. Allison, did you tell? "
Allison shook
his head.
The girl
blushed hotly, and turned again to her father.
" Did
Mr. Durieux — "
Mr. Barrett
laughed again, and nodded, and Nellie's cheeks grew suddenly pale.
There was to
be no announcement of the engagement for several months, and it was understood
that Dr. Allison was to return in the spring-time that was one year hence to
take away his bride.
The two or
three weeks remaining of Dr. Allison's stay at Lauren's passed like a summer
dream. He came almost daily to visit his betrothed; and Nellie, radiant with
the intoxicating tonic of hope and happiness, regained her spirit, her rosy
cheeks, her sparkling eyes, and her graceful vivacity.
Jules Durieux
was too busy to visit much. Planting was well under way, and he was kept
closely following his plow hands. He had never been so hard worked before that
he could not spend an evening or a Sunday at the Barrett's; but somehow people
took Durieux' word in this, as they did in other things, and he was not
unnecessarily questioned.
The one time
that he did call before Dr. Allison left the parish, he was as gay and
entertaining as of old, and no one guessed how leaden his heart lay or how
hatefully conspicuous one tiny object, the glittering ring upon Nellie's
finger, was to his weary eyes.
Dr. Allison
went to his new work buoyed with all that goes toward a man's worldly bliss.
Success and love were his; what more was there to crave?
With the
coming of the summer months and respite from the more active part of the
planter's life, a calm in his affairs that preceded the vigorous sway of King
Cotton, social functions thrust themselves into prominence once more and
became the delight of the youth and maidens. There had been no large
entertainment with its banquet and band of good music since the tournament, and
the young folks looked upon Dr. Allison's visit in August as an excellent
excuse for another great affair, to take place in the town hall at Sigma.
There had
been minor social gatherings at intervals all along, presided over by the country
fiddler or perhaps two young darkies with lusty lungs and French harps, but
these, although enjoyed in a measure, were rather a hollow mockery to any but
the youngest members of the little social world.
Mr. Durieux
had attended none of these parties and had remained closely at Englehart from
the time when Mr. Barrett told him confidentially and with comparative
cheerfulness of the arrangements for Nellie's marriage to Dr. Allison the
following year. The few times he went to the house, his visits were short and
he occupied himself mostly in discussing business affairs with Mr. Barrett.
Nellie was
forced to acknowledge to herself how sorely she missed the pleasant intercourse
that he was denying her, and her injured feelings arose in rebellion against
his conspicuous indifference toward her. She would rather he came and teased
her or scolded her, than that he should ignore her so poignantly.
She regretted
the absence of her lover daily, and told herself that she would not be so
lonely and aimless if he were near enough to visit her and relieve by his
presence the monotony of country existence. Gentlemen friends came to the house
as formerly, but in comparison with the pleasure of Dr. Allison's society
their calls seemed insipid and profitless. At first she took her long rides
alone, but as the days grew warmer and longer she abandoned them altogether and
found her only recourse in the daily letter to and from her affianced; and
some days she remorsefully detected an increasing aversion to writing, too.
At last he
came, however, her handsome, brilliant lover, and all nature took on a
brighter, merrier coloring. He was Mr. Barrett's guest, and the August days
with their lingering twilights seemed susceptible of improvement by the
addition of more hours in which to exchange the precious nothingness of love's
communion.
The subject
of the ball was broached, and like a golden ball started down hill, its course
was sped until the goal was reached.
Nellie and
Dr. Allison were a little late in arriving upon the festive scene, and almost
every one was there before them. Wheeler was leaning lazily against the door as
she entered the ball-room, and Nellie's quick perception soon made her
conscious of who was and who was not there.
She bit her
lip proudly and fought against the disappointment she was forced to
acknowledge. That Durieux would attend the ball she had not for a moment
doubted. It was aggravating, hateful of him, she inwardly declared, to stay
away when he knew that he was the best waltzer in the parish, and that she had
often told him how much she preferred him as a partner to all others.
The evening
was half spent and she had at last relinquished all hope that he had been
detained or would reconsider and come anyway. She was waltzing with Wheeler,
and after a silence she had unconsciously maintained despite his efforts to the
contrary, she said, with exaggerated indifference: " Mr. Durieux did not
come, did he? "
"
No'm."
"I
wonder why? " Nellie pulled herself together angrily. The very words she
had vowed not to utter had escaped her in spite of her rigid resolve.
"
Oh," said Wheeler, " Jules says he's getting too old for such
frivolities as balls." He watched beneath his eyelashes and saw the girl's
bare neck grow pinker. He had been laboring under some impressions of his own
for some time — ever since the tournament, in fact. He did not really know
anything, for no one had told him of Nellie's engagement to Allison, and Jules
had tried to keep his own affairs to himself; but he had been gradually piecing
bits of information together until his collection almost formed a complete
fabric. He, like Dr. Allison, had the greatest respect and admiration for
Nellie, and almost adored Durieux, so it is not much wonder that he viewed this
complication of heartstrings from his own point of vantage and almost allowed
an exclamation of victory to escape him when a certain conclusion was thrust
upon him. He awaited conviction, and Nellie said: " I don't see why he
should say that."
" Who —
say what?" demanded Wheeler blankly.
" Why,
Mr. Durieux. You said he said he was too old to dance. That's nonsense! "
she said, irritably.
" Well,
really" began Wheeler, indolently, " perhaps that's so; but Jules is
so taken up with his studies I believe he doesn't care a snap for anything
else." He turned quickly to keep his partner from being bumped by a wild
dancer who was rushing towards them, and Nellie almost lost step. She quickly
regained time, and asked: " What is he studying?"
"Who? Oh,
Jules? Well, when I left, he was interviewing Mr. Prescott. I think he wants
to read up on the history of the country before he goes. He's been freshening
his knowledge of the language, too. You know Jules is a natural linguist, and
added considerable Spanish to his repertoire while he was in New
Orleans." Again Wheeler guided quickly to one side to avoid a collision in
the crowd.
"Where
is he going? "
"Who?"
" Why,
Mr. Durieux! " said Nellie, vexed with Wheeler's stupidity.
" Oh,
why, didn't Jules tell you that he was going to Mexico soon? " Wheeler's
surprise was a little overdone, but it was not detected. " He has a friend
there in some government position, who wants Jules to join him — quite a
remunerative office, I believe, — and Jules has about decided to accept."
The band
stopped abruptly, and Wheeler offering his arm to Nellie, they began to
promenade.
" When
is he going?"
"
Who?" repeated Wheeler, and the girl could scarcely repress the
inclination to turn and shake him angrily.
" Who have
we been talking about?" she demanded severely, her cheeks flushed.
" Let me
see," mused he, stroking his mustache on the side nearest Nellie, as his
shoulders shook with suppressed amusement; " was it Durieux? "
Never mind
who it was," she said, tartly. Dr. Allison came up, and, taking his arm,
she deserted Wheeler without apologies; and he, figurative tossing up his hat
with a war-whoop, followed them meekly out upon the gallery, and spent a few
moments in surveying his structure of circumstantial evidence and adding a
block or two more that strengthened the foundation and finished off certain
parts.
The lovers
walked the length of the gallery several times, and Dr. Allison tried to
converse, but Nellie was preoccupied and scarcely heard what he said. The young
man felt wounded by her abstraction while with him, and asked her if she was
tired.
" Yes, I
am," she said, " just as tired as I can be. I wish it was time to go
home. Let us sit down."
They found
chairs near the banister, but still Nellie did not seem disposed to talk. The
band began a brilliant polka, and Dr. Allison arose gallantly: " This is
our set, isn't it? "
He expected
her to arise, but she still retained her seat and said plaintively: Please let
us not dance — I feel too tired."
"
Certainly; just as you wish," Allison said kindly, and, willing to humor
her mood, he maintained silence.
" Let us
go in," Nellie said, somewhat fretfully, after a long pause; " it's
too cool out here."
They went
back into the ball-room, and Nellie secured a seat by her mother; but there was
no other near, so Allison left her and went to a doorway, where he leaned
against the casement, watching the throng promenading before him and wondering,
somewhat provoked, at Nellie's indifference to everything. She had looked
forward to the ball with such high spirits and eager anticipation that he was
puzzled to see now how inert she had become.
He was still
looking at her as the band began playing a languorous waltz. He watched Wheeler
go up to Nellie and bend over her. The girl's eyes seemed to brighten, and she
looked up and smiled gaily. She got up, and Wheeler slipping his arm about her,
they floated across the floor.
Dr. Allison
saw it all — Nellie's awakened interest and the alacrity with which she
accepted Wheeler's invitation to dance.
"The
third time with him tonight, and only once with me! "
Dr. Allison
walked out on the gallery in no enviable frame of mind.
CHAPTER XXXI
Three weeks
more glided into oblivion. Dr. Allison's visit terminated, and the ball in his
honor was slowly being forgotten; but still Mr. Durieux did not go to see
Nellie, nor did she hear anything more of his purposed departure. She was
resolute in not allowing herself to ask any questions about him, and no one
volunteered to tell her of him.
One morning
Durieux rode in from Englehart to consult Mr. Barrett about a new piece of
machinery for the gin, and great was his annoyance to find that that gentleman
not only was not at his office, but was at home suffering from a slight bilious
attack. " This is most unfortunate," he muttered. " The gin
ought to be running now, and it is urgent that the order for this thing should
get off in today's mail.
" Well,
go on and see Barrett about it then," Mr. Henderson said, surprised that
Jules had not already done so, in stopping at the store to lament the senior
partner's absence.
Durieux
hesitated. " Oh, I hate to disturb a sick man with such petty
worries," he evaded.
" Go on
and see him, I say; he is not too sick to talk to you. I was there to see him
myself this morning, and he told me he was only staying at home to please his
wife. Go on. There is no use delaying when it is so important to get the
ginning under way."
Thus urged, there
was no help for it, and Durieux reluctantly betook him to Mr. Barrett's
handsome home.
He was
dismounted and at the steps before he discovered that Nellie was sweeping the
gallery, and both taken by surprise, an awkward greeting resulted. Nellie showed
him the way to her father's room and returned to her work. Lillie, too, was
sick, and this increased the young lady's household duties. A darkey had been
called in from the cotton picking to take Lillie's place over the stove; and
Nellie had been wondering all morning which was the lesser work, to initiate
an ignoramus, or do the work one's self. Mrs. Barrett declared decidedly in
favor of the latter, and Nellie was being won to her opinion.
When Durieux
came out of the house, a half hour later, he found Nellie sitting on the
children's jostling-board in the shade of an old magnolia tree, that grew near
the steps. She had taken off her check-work apron, and her sun-bonnet was
pushed back from her face. As Durieux neared her he lifted his hat, and would
have passed on, but she smiled, and said to him in his sweet, seductive
mother-tongue:
" Don't
be in a hurry. Sit down; I want to talk to you."
He silently
obeyed her, taking a seat on the farther end of the board.
" This
is an exquisite day, isn't it?" the girl said, by way of showing him that
she wanted to talk.
"
Yes." Durieux used the crisp English word, and sat bent forward, one arm
resting on his knee, staring at the short grass which he cut at monotonously
with his riding-whip.
Nellie
laughed nervously. " I thought I had something to say to you," she
said, indifferently, "but it seems I haven't."
Durieux arose
to his feet. " I'd better go, then; I'm in something of a hurry this
morning."
He started
down the long walk that led through the lawn to the front gate, and the girl
arose and followed at his side. They reached the gate, and he extended his hand
to open it.
" Mr.
Durieux," began Nellie, swinging her bonnet by each side close to her
face, " you haven't been a very good sister to me lately."
Jules
started.
" Nor a
friend, either," she persisted.
" I know
it," the man said, testily. " I told you an untruth when I said I was
your friend. I did not mean to deceive you, nor myself either. I have tried to
be, but it is impossible."
His voice
dropped so low .she could scarcely hear what he said, and there was the quaver
in it that she had heard once before. "I have tried to be a friend to you
and failed." His tones strengthened, and he went on vehemently: " I
don't want to be your friend. I don't want you to be happy — I lied when I said
I did! I am simply your lover, and I will never be anything else."
Nellie was
leaning against the gate, her hand upon the top, unconscious that she was keeping
him in. He stood moodily before her, his arms folded and his eyes bent upon the
ground. He went on speaking, after a pause: " It is folly to suppose that
a man can be two things to a woman at once," he said, decisively.
Nellie looked
at him quickly, and a little half-smile played in her eyes.
" Is a
man never two things to a woman at once?" she queried softly. " When
he becomes a husband, does he cease to be a lover? "
Durieux
muttered a short exclamation. " I suppose Dr. Allison may be able to occupy
both positions at once," he said, without raising his eyes. There was a
long pause, and he twisted and bit his mustache unmercifully. With an effort,
he roused himself and lifted his hat.
"Miss
Nellie, I must trouble you to let me pass. There is business I must attend
to."
The girl
flushed indignantly, and with her hand still upon the gate, she said with
defiance: " Before you go, I want to tell you that the engagement which
your interference in family affairs resulted in arranging has ended disastrously,
and that Dr. Allison has taken my pretty ring away from me."
Durieux
started violently and stared at the girl, amazed. She threw the gate wide open
and turning, walked rapidly toward the house; He called to her twice but she
would not stop. She was determined that he should not see her tears.
Jules stood
like one dreaming and watched her until she was lost sight of in the depths of
the hall; then he sprang upon his horse and galloped away.
That
afternoon he came again. He brought his buggy and Nellie went with him for a
long drive.
When they
returned Mr. Barrett was sitting on the front gallery. Durieux walked up to him
and said: "Congratulate me, Mr. Barrett. I'm the happiest man on earth.
I'm to be married soon."
Mr. Barrett
stared. " Eh, Jules? Why I'm glad to hear of it. I did not suspect that
you had any such ideas — " He turned to look at his daughter to see what
she thought of the surprising news, but Nellie had flown into the house.